Aldous Huxley's
AFTER
MANY A SUMMER
_________________
PART ONE
CHAPTER ONE
It had all been arranged by telegram; Jeremy Pordage
was to look out for a coloured chauffeur in a grey uniform with a carnation in
his buttonhole; and the coloured chauffeur was to look out for a middle-aged
Englishman carrying the Poetical Works of Wordsworth. In spite of the crowds at the station, they
found one another without difficulty.
'Mr
Stoyte's chauffeur?'
'Mr
Pordage, sah?'
Jeremy
nodded and, his Wordsworth in one hand, his umbrella in the other, half
extended his arms in the gesture of a self-deprecatory mannequin exhibiting,
with a full and humorous consciousness of their defects, a deplorable figure
accentuated by the most ridiculous clothes.
'A poor thing,' he seemed to be implying, 'but myself.' A defensive and, so to say, prophylactic
disparagement had become a habit with him.
He resorted to it on every sort of occasion. Suddenly a new idea came into his head. Anxiously he began to wonder whether, in this
democratic
Jeremy
laughed a little uncomfortably. A week
in
'Where's
my porter?' he said fussily in order to change the subject.
A few
minutes later they were on their way.
Cradled in the back seat of the car, out of range, he hoped, of the
chauffeur's conversation, Jeremy Pordage abandoned himself to the pleasure of
merely looking.
The first
thing to present itself was a slum of Africans and Filipinos, Japanese and
Mexicans. And what permutations and
combinations of black, yellow, and brown!
What complex bastardies! And the
girls - how beautiful in their artificial silk!
'And Negro ladies in white muslin gowns.' His favourite line in The Prelude. He smiled to himself. And meanwhile the slum had given place to the
tall buildings of a business district.
The
population took on a more Caucasian tinge.
At every corner there was a drugstore.
The newspaper boys were selling headlines about Franco's drive on
Barcelona. Most of the girls, as they
walked along, seemed to be absorbed in silent prayer; but he supposed, on
second thoughts, it was only gum that they were thus incessantly
ruminating. Gum, not God. Then suddenly the car plunged into a tunnel
and emerged into another world, a vast, untidy, suburban world of
filling-stations and billboards, a low houses in gardens, of vacant lots and
wastepaper, of occasional shops and office buildings and churches - Primitive
Methodist churches built, surprisingly enough, in the style of the Cartuja at
Granada, Catholic churches like Canterbury Cathedral, synagogues disguised as
Hagia Sophia, Christian Science churches with pillars and pediments, like
banks. It was a winter day and early in
the morning; but the sun shone brilliantly, the sky was without a cloud. The car was travelling westwards, and the
sunshine, slanting from behind them as they advanced, lit up each building,
each skysign and billboard, as though with a spotlight, as though on purpose to
show the new arrival all the sights.
EATS. COCKTAILS. OPEN NITES.
JUMBO MALTS.
DO THINGS. GO PLACES WITH CONSOL SUPER GAS!
AT BEVERLY PANTHEON FINE FUNERALS ARE NOT EXPENSIVE.
The car
sped onwards, and here in the middle of a vacant lot was a restaurant in the
form of a seated bulldog, the entrance between the front paws, the eyes
illuminated.
'Zoomorph,'
Jeremy Pordage murmured to himself, and again, 'zoomorph.' He had the scholar's taste for words. The bulldog shot back into the past.
ASTROLOGY, NUMEROLOGY, PSYCHIC READINGS.
DRIVE IN FOR NUTBERGERS - whatever
they were. He resolved at the earliest
opportunity to have one. A nutberger and
a jumbo malt.
STOP HERE FOR CONSOL SUPER GAS.
Surprisingly,
the chauffeur stopped. 'Ten gallons of
Super-Super,' he ordered; then, turning back to Jeremy, 'This is our company,'
he added. 'Mr Stoyte, he's the
president.' He pointed to a billboard
across the street. CASH LOANS IN FIFTEEN MINUTES, Jeremy read; CONSULT COMMUNITY SERVICE FINANCE CORPORATION. 'That's
another of ours,' said the chauffeur proudly.
They drove on. The face of a beautiful young woman, distorted, like a Magdalene's, with grief, stared out of a giant billboard. BROKEN ROMANCE, proclaimed the caption. SCIENCE PROVES THAT 73 PER CENT OF ALL ADULTS HAVE HALITOSIS.
IN TIME OF SORROW LET BEVERLY PANTHEON BE YOUR FRIEND.
FACIALS, PERMANENTS, MANICURES.
BETTY'S BEAUTY SHOPPE.
Next
door to the beauty shoppe was a Western Union office. That cable to his mother ... Heavens, he had
almost forgotten! Jeremy leaned forward and,
in the apologetic tone he always used when speaking to servants, asked the
chauffeur to stop for a moment. The car
came to a halt. With a preoccupied
expression on his mild, rabbit-like face, Jeremy got out and hurried across the
pavement, into the office.
'Mrs
Pordage, The Araucarias, Woking, England,' he wrote, smiling a little as he did
so. The exquisite absurdity of that
address was a standing source of amusement.
'The Araucarias, Woking.' His
mother, when she bought the house, had wanted to change the name, as being too
ingenuously middle-class, too much like a joke by Hilaire Belloc. 'But that's the beauty of it,' he had
protested. 'That's the charm.' And he had tried to make her see how utterly
right it would be for them to live at such an address. The deliciously comic incongruity between the
name of the house and the nature of its occupants! And what a beautiful, topsy-turvy
appositeness in the fact that Oscar Wilde's old friend, the witty and cultured
Mrs Pordage, should write her sparkling letters from The Araucarias, and that
from these same Araucarias, these Araucarias, mark you, at Woking,
should come the works of mingled scholarship and curiously rarefied wit for
which her son had gained his reputation.
Mrs Pordage had almost instantly seen what he was driving at. No need, thank goodness, to labour your
points where she was concerned. You
could talk entirely in hints and anacoluthons; she could be relied on to
understand. The Araucarias had remained
the Araucarias.
Having
written the address, Jeremy paused, pensively frowned and initiated the
familiar gesture of biting his pencil - only to find, disconcertingly, that
this particular pencil was tipped with brass and fastened to a chain. 'Mrs Pordage, The Araucarias, Woking, England,'
he read out aloud, in the hope that the words would inspire him to compose the
right, the perfect message - the message his mother expected of him, at once
tender and witty, charged with a genuine devotion ironically worded,
acknowledging her maternal domination, but at the same time making fun of it,
so that the old lady could salve her conscience by pretending that her son was
entirely free, and herself the least tyrannical of mothers. It wasn't easy - particularly with this
pencil on a chain. After several
abortive essays he decided, though it was definitely unsatisfactory, on:
'Climate being subtropical shall break vow re underclothes stop. Wish you were here my sake not yours as you
would scarcely appreciate this unfinished Bournemouth indefinitely magnified
stop.'
'Unfinished
what?' questioned the young woman on the further side of the counter.
'B-o-u-r-n-e-m-o-u-t-h,'
Jeremy spelled out. He smiled; behind
the bifocal lenses of his spectacles his blue eyes twinkled, and, with a gesture
of which he was quite unconscious, but which he always, automatically, made
when he was about to utter one of his little jokes, he stroked the smooth bald
spot on the top of his head. 'You know,'
he said, in a particularly fluty tone, 'the bourne to which no traveller goes,
if he can possibly help it.'
The girl
looked at him blankly; then, inferring from his expression that something funny
had been said, and remembering that courteous Service was Western Union's
slogan, gave the bright smile for which the poor old chump was evidently
asking, and went on reading: 'Hope you have fun at Grasse stop Tendresses
Jeremy.'
It was an
expensive message; but luckily, he reflected, as he took out his pocketbook,
luckily Mr Stoyte was grossly overpaying him.
Three months' work, six thousand dollars. So damn the expense.
He
returned to the car and they drove on.
Mile after mile they went, and the suburban houses, the gas-stations,
the vacant lots, the churches, the shops went along with them, interminably. To right and left, between palms, or pepper
trees, or acacias, the streets of the enormous residential quarter receded to
the vanishing point.
CLASSY EATS. MILE HIGH CONES.
JESUS SAVES.
HAMBURGERS.
Yet
once more the traffic lights turned red.
A paperboy came to the window.
'Franco claims gains in Catalonia,' Jeremy read, and turned away. The frightfulness of the world had reached a
point at which it had become for him merely boring. From the halted car in front of them, two
elderly ladies, both with permanently waved white hair and both wearing crimson
trousers, descended, each carrying a Yorkshire terrier. The dogs were set down at the foot of the
traffic signal. Before the animals could
make up their minds to use the convenience, the lights had changed. The Negro shifted into first, and the car
swerved forward, into the future. Jeremy
was thinking of his mother.
Disquietingly enough, she too had a Yorkshire terrier.
FINE LIQUORS.
TURKEY SANDWICHES.
GO TO CHURCH AND FEEL BETTER ALL THE WEEK.
WHAT IS GOOD FOR BUSINESS IS GOOD FOR YOU.
Another
zoomorph presented itself, this time a real estate agent's office in the form
of an Egyptian sphinx.
JESUS IS COMING SOON.
YOU TOO CAN HAVE ABIDING YOUTH WITH THRILLPHORM BRASSIERES.
BEVERLY PANTHEON, THE CEMETERY THAT IS DIFFERENT.
With the triumphant expression of Puss-in-Boots
enumerating the possessions of the Marquis of Carabas, the Negro shot a glance
over his shoulder at Jeremy, waved his hand towards the billboard and said,
'That's ours too.'
'You
mean, the Beverly Pantheon?'
The man
nodded. 'Finest cemetery in the world, I
guess,' he said: and added, after a moment's pause, 'maybe you's like to see
it. It wouldn't hardly be out of our
way.'
'That
would be very nice,' said Jeremy with upper-class English graciousness. Then, feeling that he ought to express his
acceptance rather more warmly and democratically, he cleared his throat and,
with a conscious effort to reproduce the local vernacular, added that it would
be swell. Pronounced in his
Trinity College Cambridge voice, the word sounded so unnatural that he began to
blush with embarrassment. Fortunately,
the chauffeur was too busy with the traffic to notice.
They
turned to the right, sped past a Rosicrucian Temple, past two cat-and-dog
hospitals, past a School for Drum-Majorettes and two more advertisement of the
Beverly Pantheon. As they turned to the
left on Sunset Boulevard, Jeremy had a glimpse of a young woman who was doing
her shopping in a hydrangea-blue strapless bathing-suit, platinum curls and a
black fur jacket. Then she too was
whirled back into the past.
The
present was a road at the foot of a line of steep hills, a road flanked by
small, expensive-looking shops, by restaurants, by nightclubs shuttered against
the sunlight, by offices and apartment houses.
Then they too had taken their places in the irrevocable. A sign proclaimed that they were crossing the
city limits of Beverly Hills. The
surroundings changed. The road was
flanked by the gardens of a rich residential quarter. Through trees, Jeremy saw the façades of
houses, all new, almost all in good taste - elegant and witty pastiches of
Lutyens manor houses, of Little Trianons, of Monticellos; light-hearted
parodies of Le Corbusier's solemn machines-for-living-in; fantastic Mexican
adaptations of Mexican haciendas and New England farms.
They
turned to the right. Enormous palm trees
lined the road. In the sunlight, masses
of mesembryanthemums blazed with an intense magenta glare. The houses succeeded one another, like the
pavilions at some endless international exhibition. Gloucestershire followed Andalusia and gave
place in turn to Touraine and Oaxaca, Düsseldorf and Massachusetts.
'That's
Harold Lloyd's place,' said the chauffeur, indicating a kind of Boboli. 'And that's Charlie Chaplin's. And that's Pickfair.'
The road
began to mount, vertiginously. The
chauffeur pointed across an intervening gulf of shadow at what seemed a Tibetan
Lamasery on the opposite hill, 'That's where Ginger Rogers lives. Yes, sir,' he nodded triumphantly, as
he twirled the steering-wheel.
Five or
six more turns brought the car to the top of the hill. Below and behind lay the plain, with the city
like a map extending indefinitely into a pink haze.
Before
and to either hand were mountains - ridge after ridge as far as the eye could
reach, a desiccated Scotland, empty under the blue desert sky.
The car
turned a shoulder of orange rock, and there all at once, on a summit hitherto
concealed from view, was a huge sky sign, with the words, BEVERLY PANTHEON, THE PERSONALITY CEMETERY, in six-foot neon tubes and, above it, on the very
crest, a full-scale reproduction of the Leaning Tower of Pisa - only this one
didn't lean.
'See
that?' said the Negro impressively.
'That's the Tower of Resurrection.
Two hundred thousand dollars, that's what it cost. Yes, sir.' He spoke with an emphatic solemnity. One was made to feel that the money had all
come out of his own pocket.
CHAPTER TWO
An hour later, they were on their way again, having
seen everything. Everything. The sloping lawns, like a green oasis in the
mountain desolation. The groves of
trees. The tombstones in the grass. The Pets' Cemetery, with its marble group
after Landseer's 'Dignity and Impudence.'
The tiny Church of the Poet - a miniature reproduction of Holy Trinity
at Stratford-on-Avon complete with Shakespeare's tomb and a twenty-four-hour
service of organ music played automatically by the Perpetual Wurlitzer and
broadcast by concealed loudspeakers all over the cemetery.
Then,
leading out of the vestry, the Bride's Apartment (for one was married at the
Tiny Church as well as buried from it) - the Bride's Apartment that had just
been redecorated, said the chauffeur, in the style of Norma Shearer's boudoir
in Marie Antoinette. And next to
the Bride's Apartment, the exquisite black marble Vestibule of Ashes, leading
to the Crematorium, where three super-modern oil-burning mortuary furnaces were
always under heat and ready for any emergency.
Accompanied
wherever they went by the tremolos of the Perpetual Wurlitzer, they had driven
next to look at the Tower of Resurrection - from the outside only; for it
housed the executive offices of the West Coast Cemeteries Corporation. Then the Children's Corner with its statues
of Peter Pan and the Infant Jesus, its groups of alabaster babies playing with
bronze rabbits, its lily pool and an apparatus labelled The Fountain of Rainbow
Music, from which there spouted simultaneously water, coloured lights and the
inescapable strains of the Perpetual Wurlitzer.
Then, in rapid succession, the Garden of Quiet, the Tiny Taj Mahal, the
Old World Mortuary. And, reserved by the
chauffeur to the last, as the final and crowning proof of his employer's glory,
the Pantheon itself.
Was it
possible, Jeremy asked himself, that such an object existed? It was certainly not probable. The Beverly Pantheon lacked all
verisimilitude, was something entirely beyond his powers to invent. The fact that the idea of it was now in his
mind proved, therefore, that he must really have seen it. He shut his eyes against the landscape and
recalled to his memory the details of that incredible reality. The external architecture, modelled on that
of Boecklin's 'Toteninsel.' The circular
vestibule. The replica of Rodin's 'Le
Baiser,' illuminated by concealed pink floodlights. With its flights of black marble stairs. The seven-story columbarium, the endless
galleries, its tiers on tiers of slab-sealed tombs. The bronze and silver urns of the cremated,
like athletic trophies. The
stained-glass windows after Burne-Jones.
The texts inscribed on marble scrolls.
The Perpetual Wurlitzer crooning on every floor. The sculpture ...
That was
the hardest to believe, Jeremy reflected, behind closed eyelids. Sculpture almost as ubiquitous as the
Wurlitzer. Statues wherever you turned
your eyes. Hundreds of them, bought
wholesale, one would guess, from some monumental masonry concern at Carrara or
Pietrasanta. All nudes, all female, all
exuberantly nubile. The sort of statues
one would expect to see in the reception room of a high-class brothel in Rio de
Janeiro. 'Oh, Death,' demanded a marble
scroll at the entrance to every gallery, 'where is thy sting?' Mutely, but eloquently, the statues gave
their reassuring reply. Statues of young
ladies in nothing but a very tight belt imbedded, with Bernini-like realism, in
the Parian flesh. Statues of young
ladies crouching; young ladies using both hands to be modest; young ladies
stretching, writhing, callipygously stooping to tie their sandals,
reclining. Young ladies with doves, with
panthers, with other young ladies, with upturned eyes expressive of the soul's
awakening. 'I am the Resurrection and
the Life,' proclaimed the scrolls. 'The
Lord is my shepherd; therefore I shall want nothing.' Nothing, not even Wurlitzer, not even girls
in tightly buckled belts. 'Death is
swallowed up in victory' - the victory no longer of the spirit but of the body,
the well-fed body, for ever youthful, immortally athletic, indefatigably
sexy. The Moslem paradise had had
copulations six centuries long. In this
new Christian heaven, progress, no doubt, would have stepped up the period to a
millennium and added the joys of everlasting tennis, eternal golf and swimming.
All at
once the car began to descend. Jeremy
opened his eyes again, and saw that they had reached the further edge of the
range of hills, among which the Pantheon was built.
Below lay
a great tawny plain, chequered with patches of green and dotted with white
houses. On its further side, fifteen or
twenty miles away, ranges of pinkish mountains fretted the horizon.
'What's
this?' Jeremy asked.
'The San
Fernando Valley,' said the chauffeur. He
pointed into the middle distance.
'That's where Groucho Marx has his place,' he said. 'Yes, sir.'
At the
bottom of the hill the car turned to the left along a wide road that ran, a
ribbon of concrete and suburban buildings, through the plain. The chauffeur put on speed; sign succeeded
sign with bewildering rapidity. MALTS CABIN DINE AND DANCE AT THE CHATEAU HONOLULU SPIRITUAL HEALING AND COLONIC IRRIGATION BLOCKLONG HOT DOGS BUY YOUR DREAM HOME NOW. And behind the signs the mathematically
planted rows of apricot and walnut trees flicked past - a succession of
glimpsed perspectives preceded and followed every time by fan-like approaches
and retirements.
Dark-green
and gold, enormous orange orchards manoeuvred, each one a mile-square regiment
glittering in the sunlight. Far off, the
mountains traced their uninterpretable graph of boom and slump.
'Tarzana,'
said the chauffeur startlingly; there, sure enough, was the name suspended, in
white letters, across the road. 'There's
Tarzana College,' the man went on, pointing to a group of Spanish-Colonial
palaces clustering round a Romanesque basilica.
'Mr Stoyte, he's just given them an auditorium.'
They
turned to the right along a less important road. The orange groves gave place for a few miles
to huge fields of alfalfa and fusty grass, then returned again more luxuriant than
ever. Meanwhile the mountains on the
northern edge of the valley were approaching and, slanting in from the west,
another range was looming up to the left.
They drove on. The road took a
sudden turn, aiming, it seemed, at the point where the two ranges must come
together. All at once, through a gap
between two orchards, Jeremy Pordage saw a most surprising sight. About half a mile from the foot of the
mountains, like an island off a cliff-bound coast, a rocky hill rose abruptly,
in places almost precipitously, from the plain.
On the summit of the bluff and as though growing out of it in a kind of
efflorescence, stood a castle. But what
a castle! The donjon was like a
skyscraper, the bastions plunged headlong with the effortless swoop of concrete
dams. The thing was Gothic, mediaeval,
baronial - doubly baronial, Gothic with a Gothicity raised, so to speak, to a
higher power, more mediaeval than any building of the thirteenth century. For this ... this Object, as Jeremy was
reduced to calling it, was mediaeval, not out of vulgar historical necessity,
like Coucy, say, or Alnwick, but out of pure fun and wantonness, platonically,
one might say. It was mediaeval as only
a witty and irresponsible modern architect would wish to be mediaeval, as only
the most competent modern engineers are technically equipped to be.
Jeremy
was startled into speech. 'What on earth
is that?' he asked, pointing at the nightmare on the hilltop.
'Why,
that's Mr Stoyte's place,' said the retainer; and smiling yet once more with
the pride of vicarious ownership, he added: 'It's a pretty fine home, I guess.'
The
orange groves closed in again; leaning back in his seat, Jeremy Pordage began
to wonder, rather apprehensively, what he had let himself in for when he
accepted Mr Stoyte's offer. The pay was
princely; the work, which was to catalogue the almost legendary Hauberk Papers,
would be delightful. But that cemetery,
this ... Object - Jeremy shook his head.
He had known, of course, that Mr Stoyte was rich, collected pictures,
owned a showplace in California. But
no-one had ever led him to expect this.
The humorous puritanism of his good taste was shocked; he was appalled
at the prospect of meeting the person capable of committing such an
enormity. Between that person and
oneself, what contact, what community of thought or feeling could possibly
exist? What had he sent for one? For it was obvious that he couldn't
conceivably like one's books. But had he
even read one's books? Did he have the
faintest idea of what one was like?
Would he be capable, for example, of understanding why one had insisted
on the name of The Araucarias remaining unchanged? Would he appreciate one's point of view about
...?
These anxious
questionings were interrupted by the noise of the horn, which the chauffeur was
sounding with a loud and offensive insistence.
Jeremy looked up. Fifty yards
ahead, an ancient Ford was creeping tremulously along the road. It carried, lashed insecurely to roof and
running-boards and luggage-rack, a squalid cargo of household goods - rolls of
bedding, an old iron stove, a crate of pots and pans, a folded tent, a tin
bath. As they flashed past, Jeremy had a
glimpse of three dull-eyed anaemic children, of a woman with a piece of sacking
wrapped around her shoulders, of a haggard, unshaved man.
'Transients,'
the chauffeur explained in a tone of contempt.
'What's
that?' Jeremy asked.
'Why, transients,'
the Negro repeated, as though the emphasis were an explanation. 'Guess that lot's from the dust bowl. Kansas licence plate. Come to pick our navels.'
'Come to
pick your navels?' Jeremy echoed incredulously.
'Navel
oranges,' said the chauffeur. 'It's the
season. Pretty good year for navels, I
guess.'
They
emerged once more into the open, and there once more was the Object, larger
than ever. Jeremy had time to study the
details of its construction. A wall with
towers encircled the base of the hills, and there was a second line of defence,
in the most approved post-Crusades manner, half-way up. On the summit stood the square keep,
surrounded by subsidiary buildings.
From the
donjon, Jeremy's eyes travelled down to a group of buildings in the plain, not
far from the foot of the hill. Across
the façade of the largest of them the words, 'Stoyte Home for Sick Children,'
were written in guilded letters. Two
flags, one the stars and stripes, the other a white banner with the letter S in
scarlet, fluttered in the breeze. Then a
grove of leafless walnut trees shut out the view once again. Almost at the same moment the chauffeur threw
his engine out of gear and put on the brakes.
The car came gently to a halt beside a man who was walking at a brisk
pace along the grassy very of the road.
'Want a
ride, Mr Propter?' the Negro called.
The
stranger turned his head, gave the man a smile of recognition and came to the
window of the car. He was a large man,
broad-shouldered, but rather stooping, with brown hair turning grey and a face,
Jeremy thought, like the face of one of those statues which Gothic sculptors
carved for a place high up on the West front - a face of sudden prominences and
deeply shadowed folds and hollows, emphatically rough-hewn so as to be
expressive even at a distance. But this
particular face, he went on to notice, was not merely emphatic, not only for
the distance; it was a face also for the near point, also for intimacy, a
subtle face, in which there were the signs of sensibility and intelligence as
well as of power, of a gentle and humorous serenity no less than of energy and
strength.
'Hullo,
George,' the stranger said, addressing the chauffeur; 'nice of you to stop for
me.'
'Well,
I'm sure glad to see you, Mr Propter,' said the Negro cordially. Then he half-turned in his seat, waved a hand
towards Jeremy, and with a florid formality of tone and manner said, 'I'd like
to have you meet Mr Pordage of England.
Mr Pordage, this is Mr Propter.'
The two
men shook hands, and, after an exchange of courtesies, Mr Propter got into the
car.
'You're
visiting Mr Stoyte?' he asked, as the chauffeur drove on.
Jeremy
shook his head. He was here on business;
had come to look at some manuscripts - the Hauberk Papers, to be precise.
Mr
Propter listened attentively, nodded from time to time and, when Jeremy had
finished, sat for a moment in silence.
'Take a
decayed Christian,' he said at last in a meditative tone, 'and the remains of a
Stoic; mix thoroughly with good manners, a bit of money and an old-fashioned
education; simmer for several years in a university. Result: a scholar and a gentleman. Well, there were worse types of human
being.' He uttered a little laugh. 'I might almost claim to have been one
myself, once, long ago.'
Jeremy
looked at him enquiringly. 'You're not William
Propter, are you?' he asked. 'Not Short
Studies in the Counter-Reformation, by any chance?'
The other
inclined his head.
Jeremy
looked at him in amazement and delight.
Was it possible? he asked himself.
Those Short Studies had been one of his favourite books - a
model, he had always thought, of their kind.
'Well,
I'm jiggered!' he said aloud, using the schoolboyish locution deliberately and
as though between inverted commas. He
had found that, both in writing and in conversation, there were exquisite
effects to be obtained by the judicious employment, in a solemn or cultural
context, of a phrase of slang, a piece of childish profanity or obscenity. 'I'll be damned!' he exploded again, and his
consciousness of the intentional silliness of the words made him stroke his
bald head and cough.
There was
another moment of silence. Then, instead
of talking, as Jeremy had expected, about the Short Studies, Mr Propter
merely shook his head and said, 'We mostly are.'
'Mostly
are what?' asked Jeremy.
'Jiggered,'
Mr Propter answered. 'Damned. In the psychological sense of that word,' he
added.
The
walnut trees came to an end, and there once more, on the starboard bow, was the
Object. Mr Propter pointed in its
direction. 'Poor Jo Stoyte!' he
said. 'Think of having that millstone
round one's neck. Not to mention, of
course, all the other millstones that go with it. What luck we've had, don't you think? - we
who've never been given the opportunity of being anything much worse than
scholars and gentlemen!' After another
little silence, 'Poor Jo,' he went on with a smile, 'he isn't either of
them. You'll find him a bit trying. Because of course he'll want to bully you,
just because tradition says that your type is superior to his type. Not to mention the fact,' he added, looking
into Jeremy's face with an expression of mingled amusement and sympathy, 'that
you're probably the sort of person that invites persecution. A bit of a murderee, I'm afraid, as well as a
scholar and gentleman.'
Feeling
simultaneously annoyed by the man's indiscretion and touched by his
friendliness, Jeremy smiled rather nervously and nodded his head.
'Maybe,'
Mr Propter went on, 'maybe it would help you to be less of a murderee towards
Jo Stoyte if you knew what gave him the original impulsion to get damned in
just that way' - and he pointed again towards the Object. 'We were at school together, Jo and I - only
nobody called him Jo in those days. We
called him Slob, or Jelly-Belly.
Because, you se,, poor Jo was the local fat-boy, the only fat-boy in the
school during those years.' He paused
for a moment; then went on in another tone, 'I've often wondered why people
have always made fun of fatness. Perhaps
there's something intrinsically wrong with fat.
For example, there isn't a single fat saint - except, of course, old
Thomas Aquinas; and I cannot see any reason to suppose that he was a real
saint, a saint in the popular sense of the word, which happens to be the true
sense. If Thomas is a saint, then
Vincent de Paul isn't. And if Vincent's
a saint, which he obviously is, then Thomas isn't. And perhaps that enormous belly of his had
something to do with it. Who knows? But anyhow, that's by the way. We're talking about Jo Stoyte. And poor Jo, as I say, was a fat-boy and,
being fat, was fair game for the rest of us.
God, how we punished him for his glandular deficiencies! And how disastrously he reacted to that
punishment! Over-compensation.... But
here I am at home,' he added, looking out of the window as the car slackened
speed and came to a halt in front of a small white bungalow set in the midst of
a clump of eucalyptus trees. 'We'll go
on with this another time. But remember,
if poor Jo gets too offensive, think of what he was at school and be sorry for
him - and don't be sorry for yourself.'
He got out of the car, closed the door behind him and, waving a hand to
the chauffeur, walked quickly up the path and entered the little house.
The car
rolled on again. At once bewildered and reassured
by his encounter with the author of the Short Studies, Jeremy sat,
inertly looking out of the window. They
were very near the Object now; and suddenly he noticed, for the first time,
that the castle hill was surrounded by a moat.
Some few hundred yards from the water's edge, the car passed between two
pillars, topped by heraldic lions. Its
passage, it was evident, interrupted a beam of invisible light directed on a
photo-electric cell; for no sooner were they past the lions than a drawbridge
began to descend. Five seconds before
they reached the moat, it was in place; the car rolled smoothly across and came
to a halt in front of the main gateway of the castle's outer walls. The chauffeur got out and, speaking into a
telephone-receiver concealed in a convenient loophole, announced his
presence. The chromium-plated portcullis
rose noiselessly, the double doors of stainless steel swung back. They drove in. The car began to climb. The second line of walls was pierced by
another gate, which opened automatically as they approached. Between the inner side of this second wall
and the slope of the hill a ferro-concrete bridge had been constructed, large
enough to accommodate a tennis-court. In
the shadowy space beneath, Jeremy caught sight of something familiar. An instant later he had recognized it as a
replica of the grotto of Lourdes.
'Miss
Maunciple, she's a Catholic,' remarked the chauffeur, jerking his thumb in the
direction of the grotto. 'That's why he
had it made for her. We's Presbyterians
in our family,' he added.
'And who
is Miss Maunciple?'
The
chauffeur hesitated for a moment. 'Well,
she's a young lady Mr Stoyte's kind of friendly with,' he explained at last;
then changed the subject.
The car
climbed on. Beyond the grotto all the
hillside was a cactus garden. Then the
road swung round to the northern slope of the bluff, and the cactuses gave
place to grass and shrubs. On a little
terrace, over-elegant like a fashion-plate from some mythological Vogue
for goddesses, a bronze nymph of Giambologna spouted two streams of water from
her deliciously polished breasts. A
little further on, behind wire netting, a group of baboons squatted among the
rocks or paraded the obscenity of their hairless rumps.
Still
climbing, the car turned again and finally drew up on a circular concrete
platform, carried out on cantilevers over a precipice. Once more the old-fashioned retainer, the
chauffeur taking off his cap, did a final impersonation of himself welcoming
the young master home to the plantation, then set to work to unload the
luggage.
Jeremy
Pordage walked to the balustrade and looked over. The ground fell almost sheer for about a
hundred feet, then sloped steeply to the inner circle of walls and, below them,
to the outer fortifications. Beyond lay
the moat, and on the further side of the moat stretched the orange orchards, 'Im
dunklen Laub die goldn' Orangen glühen,' he murmured to himself; and then:
'He hangs in shades the orange bright.
Like golden lamps in a green night.'
Marvell's rendering, he decided, was better than Goethe's. And, meanwhile, the oranges seemed to have
become brighter and more significant.
For Jeremy, direct, unmeditated experience was always hard to take in,
always more or less disquieting. Life
became safe, things assumed meaning, only when they had been translated into
words and confined between the covers of a book. The oranges were beautifully pigeonholed; but
what about the castle? He turned round
and, leaning back against the parapet, looked up. The Object impended, insolently
enormous. Nobody had dealt poetically
with that. Not Childe Roland, not
the King of Thule, not Marmion, not the Lady of Shalott, not Sir Leoline. Sir Leoline, he repeated to himself, with a
connoisseur's appreciation of romantic absurdity, Sir Leoline, the baron rich
who had - what? A toothless mastiff
bitch. But Mr Stoyte had baboons and a
sacred grotto, Mr Stoyte had a chromium portcullis and the Hauberk Papers, Mr
Stoyte had a cemetery like an amusement park and a donjon like ...
There was
a sudden rumbling sound; the great nail-studded doors of the Early English
entrance porch rolled back, and from between them, as though propelled by a
hurricane, a small, thickset man, with a red face and a mass of snow-white
hair, darted out on to the terrace and bore down upon Jeremy. His expression, as he advanced, did not
change. The face wore that shut,
unsmiling mask which American workmen tend to put on in their dealing with
strangers - in order to prove, by not making the ingratiating grimaces of
courtesy, that theirs is a free country and you're not going to come it over them.
Not
having been brought up in a free country, Jeremy had automatically begun to
smile as this person, whom he guessed to be his host and employer, came hurrying
towards him. Confronted by the
unwavering grimness of the other's face, he suddenly became conscious of this
smile - conscious that it was out of place, that it must be making him look a
fool. Profoundly embarrassed, he tried
to readjust his face.
'Mr
Pordage?' said the stranger in a harsh, barking voice. 'Pleased to meet you. My name's Stoyte.' As they shook hands, he peered, still
unsmiling, into Jeremy's face. 'You're
older than I thought,' he added.
For the
second time that morning Jeremy made his mannequin's gesture of apologetic
self-exhibition.
'The sere
and withered leaf,' he said. 'One's
sinking into senility. One's ...'
Mr Stoyte
cut him short. 'What's your age?' he
asked in a loud peremptory tone, like that of a police sergeant interrogating a
captured thief.
'Fifty-four.'
'Only
fifty-four?' Mr Stoyte shook his
head. 'Ought to be full of pep at
fifty-four. How's your sex-life?' he
added disconcertingly.
Jeremy
tried to laugh off his embarrassment. He
twinkled; he patted his bald head. 'Mon
beau printemps et mon été ont fait le sault par la fenêtre,' he quoted.
'What's
that?' said Mr Stoyte, frowning. 'No use
talking foreign languages to me. I never
had any education.' He broke into sudden
braying of laughter. 'I'm head of an oil
company here,' he said. 'Got two
thousand filling-stations in California alone.
And not one man in any of those filling-stations that isn't a college
graduate!' He brayed again,
triumphantly. 'Go and talk foreign
languages to them.' He was silent
for a moment; then, pursuing an unexplicit association of ideas, 'My agent in
London,' he went on, 'the man who picks up things for me there - he gave me
your name. Told me you were the right
man for those - what do you call them?
You know, those papers I bought this summer. Roebuck?
Hobuck?'
'Hauberk,'
said Jeremy, and with a gloomy satisfaction noted that he had been quite
right. The man had never read one's
books, never even heard of one's existence.
Still, one had to remember that he had been called Jelly-Belly when he
was young.
'Hauberk,'
Mr Stoyte repeated with a contemptuous impatience. 'Anyhow, he said you were the man.' Then, without pause or transition, 'What was
it you were saying, about your sex-life, when you started that foreign stuff on
me?'
Jeremy
laughed uncomfortably. 'One was implying
that it was normal for one's age.'
'What do you
know about what's normal at your age?' said Mr Stoyte. 'Go and talk to Dr Obispo about it. It wont' cost you anything. Obispo's on salary. He's the house physician.' Abruptly changing the subject, 'Would you
like to see the castle?' he asked. 'I'll
take you round.'
'Oh,
that's very kind of you,' said Jeremy effusively. And, for the sake of making a little polite
conversation, he added: 'I've already seen your burial-ground.'
'Seen my
burial-ground?' Mr Stoyte repeated in a tone of suspicion: suspicion turned
suddenly to anger. 'What the hell do you
mean?' he shouted.
Quailing
before his fury, Jeremy stammered something about the Beverly Pantheon and that
he had understood from the chauffeur that Mr Stoyte had a financial interest in
the company.
'I see,'
said the other, somewhat mollified, but still frowning. 'I thought you meant ...' Stoyte broke off in
the middle of the sentence, leaving the bewildered Jeremy to guess what he had
thought. 'Come on,' he barked; and,
bursting into movement, he hurried towards the entrance to the house.
CHAPTER THREE
There was silence in Ward Sixteen of the Stoyte Home for
Sick Children; silence and the luminous twilight of drawn venetian blinds. It was the mid-morning rest period. Three of the five small convalescents were
asleep. A fourth lay staring at the
ceiling, pensively picking his nose. The
fifth, a little girl, was whispering to a doll as curly and Aryan as
herself. Seated by one of the windows, a
young nurse was absorbed in the latest issue of True Confessions.
'His heart gave a lurch,' she read. 'With a strangled cry he pressed me
closer. For months we'd been fighting
against just this; but the magnet of our passion was too strong for us. The clamorous pressure of his lips had struck
an answering spark within my melting body.
'"Germaine,"
he whispered. "Don't make me
wait. Won't you be good to me now,
darling?"
'He was
so gentle, but so ruthless too - as a girl in love wants a man to be
ruthless. I felt myself swept away by
the rising tide of ...'
There was
a noise outside in the corridor. The
door of the ward flew open, as though before the blast of a hurricane, and
someone came rushing into the room.
The nurse
looked up with a start of surprise which the completeness of her absorption in
'The Price of a Thrill' rendered positively agonizing. Her almost immediate reaction to the shock
was one of anger.
'What's
the idea?' she began indignantly; then she recognized the intruder and her
expression changed. 'Why, Mr Stoyte!'
Disturbed
by the noise, the young nose-picker dropped his eyes from the ceiling, the
little girl turned away from her doll.
'Uncle
Jo!' they shouted simultaneously. 'Uncle
Jo!'
Starting
out of sleep, the others took up the cry.
'Uncle
Jo! Uncle Jo!'
Mr Stoyte
was touched by the warmth of his reception.
The face which Jeremy had found so disquietingly grim relaxed into a
smile. In mock protest he covered his
ears with his hands. 'You'll make me
deaf,' he cried. Then, in an aside to
the nurse, 'Poor kids!' he murmured.
'Makes me feel I'd kind of like to cry.'
His voice became husky with sentiment.
'And when one thinks how sick they've been ...' He shook his head, leaving the sentence
unfinished; then, in another tone, 'By the way,' he added, waving a large
square hand in the direction of Jeremy Pordage, who had followed him into the
ward and was standing near the door, wearing an expression of bewildered
embarrassment, 'this is Mr ... Mr ... Hell! I've forgotten your name.'
'Pordage,'
said Jeremy, and reminded himself that Mr Stoyte's name had once been Slob.
'Pordage,
that's it. Ask him about history and
literature,' he added derisively to the nurse.
'He knows it all.'
Jeremy
was modestly protesting that his period was only from the invention of Ossian
to the death of Keats, when Mr Stoyte turned back to the children and in a
voice that drowned the other's faintly fluted disclaimers, shouted: 'Guess what
Uncle Jo's brought you!'
They
guessed. Candies, bubble gum, balloons,
guinea pigs. Mr Stoyte continued
triumphantly to shake his head. Finally,
when the children had exhausted their power of imagination, he dipped into the
pocket of his old tweed jacket and produced, first a whistle, then a
mouth-organ, then a small musical box, then a trumpet, then a wooden rattle,
then an automatic pistol. This, however,
he hastily put back.
'Now
play,' he said, when he had distributed the instruments. 'All together. One, two, three.' And, beating time with both arms, he began to
sing, 'Way down upon the Swanee River.'
At this
latest in a long series of shocks and surprises, Jeremy's mild face took on an
expression of intenser bewilderment.
What a
morning! The arrival at dawn. The Negro retainer. The interminable suburb. The Beverly Pantheon. The Object among the orange trees, and his
meeting with William Propter and this really dreadful Stoyte. Then, inside the castle, the Rubens and the
great El Greco in the hall, the Vermeer in the elevator, the Rembrandt etchings
along the corridors, the Winterhalter in the butler's pantry.
Then Miss
Maunciple's Louis XV boudoir, with the Watteau and the two Lancrets and the fully
equipped soda-fountain in a rococo embrasure, and Miss Maunciple herself, in an
orange kimono, drinking a raspberry and peppermint ice-cream soda at her own
counter. He had been introduced, had
refused the offer of a sundae and been hurried on again, always at top speed,
always as though on the wings of a tornado, to see the other sights of the
castle. The Rumpus Room, for example, with frescoes of
elephants by Sert. The library, with its
woodwork by Grinling Gibbons, but with no books, because Mr Stoyte had not yet
brought himself to buy any. The small
dining-room, with its Fra Angelico and its furniture from Brighton
Pavilion. The large dining-room,
modelled on the interior of the mosque at Fatehpur Sikri. The ballroom, with its mirrors and coffered
ceiling. The thirteenth-century
stained-glass in the eleventh-floor W.C.
The morning-room, with Boucher's picture of 'La Petite Morphil' bottom
upwards on a pink satin sofa. The
chapel, imported in fragments from Goa, with the walnut confessional used by St
François de Sales at Annecy. The
functional billiard-room. The indoor
swimming-pool. The Second Empire bar,
with its nudes by Ingres. The two
gymnasiums. The Christian Science
Reading Room, dedicated to the memory of the late Mrs Stoyte. The dentist's office. The Turkish bath. Then down, with Vermeer, into the bowels of
the hill, to look at the cellar in which the Hauberk Papers had been stored. Down again yet deeper, to the safe-deposit
vaults, the powerhouse, the air-conditioning plant, the well and
pumping-station. Then up once more to
ground level and the kitchens, where the Chinese chef had shown Mr Stoyte the
newly arrived consignments of turtles from the Caribbean. Up again to the fourteenth, to the bedrooms
which Jeremy was to occupy during his stay.
Then up another six stories to the business office, where Mr Stoyte gave
orders to his secretary, dictated a couple of letters and had a long telephone
conversation with his brokers in Amsterdam.
And when that was finished, it had been time to go to the hospital.
Meanwhile,
in Ward Sixteen, a group of nurses had collected and were watching Uncle Jo,
his white hair flying like Stokowski's, frantically spurring his orchestra to
yet louder crescendos of cacophony.
'He's
like a great big kid himself,' said one of them in a tone of almost tender
amusement.
Another,
evidently with literary leanings, declared that it was like something in
Dickens. 'Don't you think so?' she
insisted to Jeremy.
He smiled
nervously and nodded a vague and noncommittal assent.
More
practical, a third wished she had her Kodak with her. 'Candid Camera portrait of the President of
Consol Oil, California Land and Minerals Corporation, Bank of the Pacific, West
Coast Cemeteries, etc., etc....' She
reeled off the names of Mr Stoyte's chief companies, mock-heroically, indeed,
but with admiring gusto, as a convinced legitimist with a sense of humour might
enumerate the titles of a grandee of Spain.
'The papers would pay you good money for a snap like that,' she
insisted. And to prove that what she was
saying was true, she went on to explain that she had a boyfriend who worked
with an advertising firm, so that he ought to know, and only the week before he
had told her that ...
Mr Stoyte's
knobbed face, as he left the hospital, was still illuminated with benevolence
and happiness.
'Makes
you feel kind of good, playing with those poor kids,' he kept repeating to
Jeremy.
A wide
flight of steps led down from the hospital entrance to the roadway. At the foot of these steps Mr Stoyte's blue
Cadillac was waiting. Behind it stood
another, smaller car which had not been there when they arrived. A look of suspicion clouded Mr Stoyte's
beaming face as he caught sight of it.
Kidnappers, blackmailers - one never knew. His hand went to the pocket of his coat. 'Who's there?' he shouted in a tone of such
loud fury that Jeremy thought for a moment that the man must have suddenly gone
mad.
Moon-like,
a large, snub-featured face appeared at the car window, smiling round the
chewed butt of a cigar.
'Oh, it's
you, Clancy,' said Mr Stoyte. 'Why
didn't they tell me you were here?' he went on.
His face had flushed darkly; he was frowning and a muscle in his cheek
had begun to twitch. 'I don't like
having strange cars around. Do you hear,
Peters?' he almost screamed at his chauffeur - not because it was the man's
business, of course; simply because he had happened to be there, available. 'Do you hear, I say?' Then, suddenly, he remembered what Dr Obispo
had said to him that time he had lost his temper with the fellow. 'Do you really want to shorten your
life, Mr Stoyte?' The doctor's tone had
been one of cool amusement; he had smiled with an expression of politely
sarcastic indulgence. 'Are you
absolutely bent on having a stroke?
A second stroke, remember; and you won't get off so lightly next
time. Well, if so, then go on behaving
as you're doing now. Go on.' With an enormous effort of will, Mr Stoyte
swallowed his anger. 'God is love,' he
said to himself. 'There is no
death.' The late Prudence McGladdery
Stoyte had been a Christian Scientist.
'God is love,' he said again, and reflected that if people would only
stop being so exasperating he would never have to lose his temper. 'God is love.' It was all their fault.
Clancy,
meanwhile, had left his car and, grotesquely pot-bellied over spindly legs, was
coming up the steps, mysteriously smiling and winking as he approached.
'What is
it?' Mr Stoyte enquired, and wished to God the man wouldn't make those
faces. 'Oh, by the way,' he added, 'this
is Mr ... Mr ...'
'Pordage,'
said Jeremy.
Clancy
was pleased to meet him. The hand he
gave to Jeremy was disagreeably sweaty.
'I got
some news for you,' said Clancy in a hoarse conspiratorial whisper; and,
speaking behind his hand, so that his words and the smell of cigar should be
for Mr Stoyte alone, 'you remember Tittelbaum?' he added.
'That
chap in the City Engineer's Department?'
Clancy
nodded. 'One of the boys,' he affirmed
enigmatically and again winked.
'Well,
what about him?' asked Mr Stoyte; and in spite of God's being love, there was a
note in his voice of renascent exasperation.
Clancy
shot a glance at Jeremy Pordage; then, with the elaborate by-play of Guy Fawkes
talking to Catesby on the stage of a provincial theatre, he took Mr Stoyte by
the arm and led him a few feet away, up the steps. 'Do you know what Tittelbaum told me today?'
he asked rhetorically.
'How the
devil should I know?' (But no, God is
love. There is no death.)
Undeterred
by the signs of Mr Stoyte's irritation, Clancy went on with his
performance. 'He told me what they've
decided about ...' he lowered his voice still further, 'about the San Felipe
Valley.'
'Well,
what have they decided?' Once
more Mr Stoyte was at the limits of his patience.
Before
answering, Clancy removed the cigar-butt from his mouth, threw it away,
produced another cigar out of his waistcoat pocket, tore off the cellophane
wrapping and stuck it, unlighted, in the place occupied by the old one.
'They've
decided,' he said very slowly, so as to give each word its full dramatic
effect, 'they've decided to pipe the water into it.'
Mr
Stoyte's expression of exasperation gave place at last to one of interest. 'Enough to irrigate the whole valley?' he
asked.
'Enough
to irrigate the whole valley,' Clancy repeated with solemnity.
Mr Stoyte
was silent for a moment. 'How much time
have we got?' he asked at last.
'Tittelbaum
thought the news wouldn't break for another six weeks.'
'Six week?' Mr Stoyte hesitated for a moment; then made
his decision. 'All right. Get busy at once,' he said with the
peremptory manners of one accustomed to command. 'Go down yourself and take a few of the other
boys along with you. Independent
purchasers - interested in cattle-raising; want to start a Dude Ranch. Buy all you can. What's the price, by the way?'
'Averages
twelve dollars an acre.'
'Twelve,'
Mr Stoyte repeated, and reflected that it would go to a hundred as soon as they
started laying the pipe. 'How many acres
do you figure you can get?' he asked.
'Maybe
thirty thousand.'
Mr
Stoyte's face beamed with satisfaction.
'Good,' he said briskly. 'Very
good. No mention of my name, of course,'
he added, and then, without pause or transition: 'What's Tittelbaum going to
cost?'
Clancy
smiled contemptuously. 'Oh, I'll give
him four or five hundred bucks.'
'That's
all?'
The other
nodded. 'Tittelbaum's in the bargain
basement,' he said. 'Can't afford to ask
any fancy prices. He needs the money -
needs it awful bad.'
'What
for?' asked Mr Stoyte, who had a professional interest in human nature. 'Gambling?
Women?'
Clancy
shook his head. 'Doctors,' he
explained. 'He's got a kid that's
paralysed.'
'Paralysed?'
Mr Stoyte echoed in a tone of genuine sympathy.
'That's too bad.' He hesitated
for a moment; then, in a sudden burst of generosity, 'Tell him to send the kid
here,' he went on, making a large gesture towards the hospital. 'Best place in the State for infantile paralysis,
and it won't cost him anything. Not a
red cent.'
'Hell,
that's kind of you, Mr Stoyte,' said Clancy admiringly. 'That's real kind.'
'Oh, it's
nothing,' said Mr Stoyte, as he moved towards his car. 'I'm glad to be able to do it. Remember what it says in the Bible about
children. You know,' he added, 'I get a
real kick out of being with those poor kids in there. Makes you feel kind of warm inside.' He patted the barrel of his chest. 'Tell Tittelbaum to send in an application
for the kid. Send it to me
personally. I'll see that it goes
through at once.' He climbed into the
car and shut the door after him; then, catching sight of Jeremy, opened it
again without a word. Mumbling
apologetically, Jeremy scrambled in. Mr
Stoyte slammed the door once more, lowered the glass and looked out. 'So long,' he said. 'And don't lose any time about that San
Felipe business. Make a good job of it,
Clancy, and I'll let you have ten per cent of all the acreage over twenty
thousand.' He raised the window and
signalled to the chauffeur to start. The
car swung out of the drive and headed towards the castle. Leaning back in his seat, Mr Stoyte thought
of those poor kids and the money he would make out of the San Felipe
business. 'God is love,' he said yet once
more, with momentary conviction and in a whisper that was audible to his
companion.
The
drawbridge came down as the blue Cadillac approached, the chromium portcullis
went up, the gates of the inner rampart rolled back to let it pass. On the concrete tennis-court the seven
children of the Chinese cook were roller-skating. Below, in the sacred grotto, a group of
masons were at work. At the sight of
them, Mr Stoyte shouted to the chauffeur to stop.
'They're
putting up a tomb for some nuns,' he said to Jeremy as they got out of the car.
'Some
nuns?' Jeremy echoed in surprise.
Mr Stoyte
nodded, and explained that his Spanish
agents had bought some sculpture and iron-work from the chapel of a convent
that had been wrecked by the anarchists at the beginning of the civil war. 'They sent some nuns along too,' he
added. 'Embalmed, I guess. Or maybe just sun-dried: I don't know. Anyhow, there they are. Luckily I happened to have something nice to
put them in.' He pointed to the monument
which the masons were in process of fixing to the south wall of the
grotto. On a marble shelf above a large
Roman sarcophagus were the statues by some nameless Jacobean stonemason of a
gentleman and lady, both in ruffs, kneeling, and behind them, in three rows of
three, nine daughters diminishing from adolescence to infancy. 'Hic jacet Carolus Franciscus Beals,
Armiger ...' Jeremy began to read.
'Bought
it in England, two years ago,' said Mr Stoyte, interrupting him. Then, turning to the workmen, 'When will you
boys be through?' he asked.
'Tomorrow
noon. Maybe tonight.'
'That's
all I wanted to know,' said Mr Stoyte, and turned away. 'I must have those nuns taken out of
storage,' he said, as they walked back to the car.
They
drove on. Poised on the almost invisible
vibration of its wings, a humming-bird was drinking at the jet that spouted
from the left nipple of Giambologna's nymph.
From the enclosure of the baboons came the shrill noise of battle and
copulation. Mr Stoyte shut his
eyes. 'God is love,' he repeated, trying
deliberately to prolong the delightful condition of euphoria into which those
poor kids and Clancy's good news had plunged him. 'God is love.
There is no death.' He waited to
feel that sense of inward warmth, like the after-effect of whisky, which had
followed his previous utterance of the words.
Instead, as though some immanent fiend were playing a practical joke on
him, he found himself thinking of the shrunken leathery corpses of those nuns,
and of his own corpse, and of judgement and the flames. Prudence McGladdery Stoyte had been a
Christian Scientist; but Joseph Budge Stoyte, his father, had been a
Sandemanian; and Letitia Morgan, his maternal grandmother, had lived and died a
Plymouth Sister. Over his cot in the
attic room of the little farmhouse in Nashville, Tennessee, had hung the text,
in vivid orange on a black background: 'IT
IS A TERRIBLE THING TO FALL INTO THE HANDS OF THE LIVING GOD.' 'God is
love,' Mr Stoyte desperately reaffirmed.
'There is no death.' But for
sinners, such as himself, it was only the worm that never died.
'If
you're always scared of dying,' Obispo had said, 'you'll surely die. Fear's a poison; and not such a slow poison
either.'
Making
another enormous effort, Mr Stoyte suddenly began to whistle. The tune was, 'I'm making hay in the
moonlight in my Baby's arms,' but the face which Jeremy Pordage saw and, as
though from some horrible and indecent secret, immediately averted his eyes
from, was the face of a man in a condemned cell.
'Old
sour-puss,' the chauffeur muttered to himself as he watched his employer get
out of the car and walk away.
Followed
by Jeremy, Mr Stoyte hurried in silence through the Gothic portal, crossed the
pillared Romanesque lobby like the Lady Chapel at Durham, and, his hat still
pulled down over his eyes, stepped into the cathedral twilight of the great
hall.
A hundred
feet overhead, the sound of the two men's footsteps echoed in the
vaulting. Like iron ghosts, the suits
of armour stood immobile round the
walls. Above them, sumptuously dim, the
fifteenth-century tapestries opened windows upon a leafy world of
phantasy. At one end of the cavernous
room, lit by a hidden searchlight, El Greco's 'Crucifixion of St Peter' blazed
out in the darkness like the beautiful revelation of something incomprehensible
and profoundly sinister. At the other,
no less brilliantly illuminated, hung a full-length portrait of Hélène
Fourment, dressed only in a bearskin cape.
Jeremy looked from one to the other - from the ectoplasm of the inverted
saint to the unequivocal skin and fat and muscle which Rubens had so loved to
see and touch; from unearthly flesh-tints of green-white ochre and carmine,
shadowed with transparent black, to the creams and warm pinks, the nacreous
blues and greens of Flemish nudity. Two
shining symbols, incomparably powerful and expressive - but of what, of
what? That, of course, was the question.
Mr Stoyte
paid attention to none of his treasures, but strode across the hall, inwardly
cursing his buried wife for having made him think about death by insisting that
there wasn't any.
The door
of the elevator was in an embrasure between pillars. Mr Stoyte opened it, and the light came on,
revealing a Dutch lady in blue satin sitting at a harpsichord - sitting, Jeremy
reflected, at the very heart of an equation, in a world where beauty and logic,
painting and analytical geometry, had become one. With what intention? To express, symbolically, what truths about
the nature of things? Again, that was
the question. Where art was concerned,
Jeremy said to himself, that was always the question.
'Shut the
door,' Mr Stoyte ordered; then, when it was done, 'we'll have a swim before
lunch,' he added, and pressed the topmost of a long row of buttons.
CHAPTER FOUR
More than a dozen families of transients were already
at work in the orange grove, as the man from Kansas, with his wife and his
three children and his yellow dog, hurried down the line towards the trees
which the overseer had assigned to him.
They walked in silence, for they had nothing to say to one another and
no energy to waste on words.
Only half
a day, the man was thinking; only four hours till work would be stopped. They'd be lucky if they made as much as
seventy-five cents. Seventy-five cents. Seventy-five cents; and that right front tyre
wasn't going to last much longer. If
they meant to get up to Fresno and then Salinas, they'd just have to get a
better one. But even the rottenest old
second-hand tyre cost money. And money
was food. And did they eat! he thought
with sudden resentment. If he were
alone, if he didn't have to drag the kids and Minnie around, then he could rent
a little place somewhere. Near the highway,
so that he could make a bit extra by selling eggs and fruit and things to the
people that rode past in their automobiles, sell a lot cheaper than the markets
and still make good money. And then,
maybe, he'd be able to buy a cow and a couple of hogs; and then he'd find a
girl - one of those fat ones, he liked them rather fat: fat and young with ...
His wife
started coughing again; the dream was shattered. Did they eat!
More than they were worth. Three
kids with no strength in them. And
Minnie going sick on you half the time so that you had to do her work as well
as yours!
The dog
had paused to sniff at a post. With
sudden and surprising agility the man from Kansas took two quick steps forward
and kicked the animal squarely in the ribs.
'You goddam dog!' he shouted.
'Get out of the way!' It ran off,
yelping. The man from Kansas turned his
head in the hope of catching in his children's faces an expression of
disapproval or commiseration. But the
children had learnt better than to give him an excuse for going on from the dog
to themselves. Under the tousled hair,
the three pale, small faces were entirely blank and vacant. Disappointed, the man turned away, grumbling
indistinctly that he'd belt the hell out of them if they weren't careful. The mother did not even turn her head. She was feeling too sick and tired to do anything
but walk straight on. Silence settled
down again over the party.
Then,
suddenly, the youngest of the three children let out a shrill cry. 'Look there!' She pointed.
In front of them was a castle.
From the summit of its highest tower rose a spidery metal structure,
carrying a succession of platforms to a height of twenty or thirty feet above
the parapet. On the highest of these
platforms, black against the shining sky, stood a tiny human figure. As they looked, the figure spread its arms and
plunged head foremost out of sight behind the battlements. The children's shrill outcry of astonishment
gave the man from Kansas the pretext which, a moment before, they had denied
him. He turned on them furiously. 'Stop that yellin',' he yelled; then rushed
at them, hitting out - a slap on the side of the head for each of them. With an enormous effort, the woman lifted
herself from the abyss of fatigue into which she had fallen; she halted, she
turned, she cried out protestingly, she caught her husband's arm. He pushed her away, so violently that she
almost fell.
'You're
as bad as the kids,' he shouted at her.
'Just layin' around and eatin'.
Not worth a damn. I tell you, I'm
just sick and tired of the whole lot of you.
Sick and tired,' he repeated. 'So
you keep your mouth shut, see!' He
turned away and, feeling a good deal better for his outburst, walked briskly
on, at a rate which he knew his wife would find exhausting, between the rows of
loaded orange trees.
From that
swimming pool at the top of the donjon the view was prodigious. Floating on the translucent water, one had
only to turn one's head to see, between the battlement, successive vistas of
plain and mountain, of green and tawny and violet and faint blue. One floated, one looked, and one thought,
that is, if one were Jeremy Pordage, of that tower in Epipsychidion,
that tower with its chambers
Looking
towards the golden Eastern air
And
level with the living winds.
Not so,
however, if one were Miss Virginia Maunciple.
Virginia neither floated, nor looked, nor thought of Epipsychidion,
but took another sip of whisky and soda, climbed to the highest platform of the
diving-tower, spread her arms, plunged, glided under water and, coming up
immediately beneath the unsuspecting Pordage, caught him by the belt of his
bathing-pants and pulled him under.
'You
asked for it,' she said, as he came up again, gasping and spluttering, to the
surface, 'lying there without moving, like a silly old Buddha.' She smiled at him with an entirely good-natured
contempt.
These
people that Uncle Jo kept bringing to the castle. An Englishman with a monocle to look at the
armour; a man with a stammer to clean the pictures; a man who couldn't speak
anything but German to look at some silly old pots and plates; and today this
other ridiculous Englishman with a face like a rabbit's and a voice like Songs
without Words on the saxophone.
Jeremy
Pordage blinked the water out of his eyes and, dimly, since he was presbyopic
and without his spectacles, saw the young laughing face very close to his own,
the body foreshortened and wavering uncertainly through the water. It was not often that he found himself in
such proximity to such a being. He
swallowed his annoyance and smiled at her.
Miss
Maunciple stretched out a hand and patted the bald patch at the top of Jeremy's
head. 'Boy,' she said, 'does it
shine. Talk of billiard-balls. I know what I shall call you: Ivory. Goodbye, Ivory.' She turned, swam to the ladder, climbed out,
walked to the table on which the bottles and glasses were standing, drank the
rest of her whisky and soda, then went and sat down on the edge of the couch on
which, in black spectacles and bathing-drawers, Mr Stoyte was taking his
sunbath.
'Well, Uncle
Jo,' she said in a tone of affectionate playfulness, 'feeling kind of good?'
'Feeling
fine, Baby,' he answered. It was true;
the sun had melted away his dismal forebodings; he was living again in the
present, that delightful present in which one brought happiness to sick
children; in which there were Tittelbaums prepared, for five hundred bucks, to
give one information worth at the very least a million; in which the sky was
blue and the sunshine a caressing warmth upon the stomach; in which, finally,
one stirred out of a delicious somnolence to see little Virginia smiling down
at one as though she really cared for old Uncle Jo, and cared for him, what was
more, not merely as an old uncle - no, sir; because, when all's said and
done, a man is only as old as he feels and acts; and where his Baby was
concerned did he feel young? did he act young? Yes, sir.
Mr Stoyte smiled to himself, a smile of triumphant self-satisfaction.
'Well,
Baby,' he said aloud, and laid a square, thick-fingered hand on the young
woman's bare knees.
Through
half-closed eyelids Miss Maunciple gave him a secret and somehow indecent look
of understanding and complicity; then uttered a little laugh and stretched her
arms. 'Doesn't the sun feel good!' she
said; and, closing her lids completely, she lowered her raised arms, clasped
her hands behind her neck, and threw back her shoulders. It was a pose that lifted the breasts, that
emphasized the inward curve of the loins and the contrary swell of the buttocks
- the sort of pose that a new arrival in the seraglio would be taught by the
eunuchs to assume at her first interview with the sultan; the very pose, Jeremy
recognized, as he had chanced to look her way, of that quite particularly
unsuitable statue on the third floor of the Beverly Pantheon.
Through
his dark glasses, Mr Stoyte looked up at her with an expression of
possessiveness at once gluttonous and paternal.
Virginia was his baby, not only figuratively and colloquially, but also
in the literal sense of the word. His
sentiments were simultaneously those of the purest father-love and the most
violent eroticism.
He looked
up at her. By contrast with the shiny
white satin of her beach clout and brassière, the sunburnt skin seemed more
richly brown. The planes of the young body
flowed in smooth continuous curves, effortlessly solid, three-dimensional,
without accent or abrupt transition. Mr
Stoyte's regards travelled up to the auburn hair and came down by way of the
rounded forehead, of the wide-set eyes, and small, straight, impudent nose, to
the mouth. That mouth - it was her most
striking feature. For it was to the
mouth's short upper lip that Virginia's face owed its characteristic expression
of child-like innocence - an expression that persisted through all her moods, that
was noticeable whatever she might be doing, whether it was telling smutty
stories or making conversation with the Bishop, taking tea in Pasadena or
getting tight with the boys, enjoying what she called 'a bit of yum-yum' or
attending Mass. Chronologically, Miss
Maunciple was a young woman of twenty-two; but that abbreviated upper lip gave
her, in all circumstances, an air of being hardly adolescent, of not having
reached the age of consent. For Mr
Stoyte, at sixty, the curiously perverse contrast between childishness and
maturity, between the appearance of innocence and the fact of experience, was
intoxicatingly attractive. It was not
only, so far as he was concerned, that Virginia was both kinds of baby; she was
also both kinds of baby objectively, in herself.
Delicious
creature! The hand that had laid inert,
hitherto, upon her knee slowly contracted.
Between the broad spatulate thumb and the strong fingers, what
smoothness, what a sumptuous and substantial resilience!
'Jinny,'
he said. 'My Baby!'
The Baby
opened her large blue eyes and dropped her arms to her sides. The tense back relaxed, the lifted breasts
moved downwards and forwards like soft living creatures sinking to repose. She smiled at him.
'What are
you pinching me for, Uncle Jo?'
'I'd like
to eat you,' her Uncle Jo replied in a tone of cannibalistic sentimentality.
'I'm
tough.'
Mr Stoyte
uttered a maudlin chuckle. 'Little tough
kid!' he said.
The tough
kid stooped down and kissed him.
Jeremy
Pordage, who had been quietly looking at the panorama and continuing his silent
recitation of Epicychidion, happened at this moment to turn once more in
the direction of the couch, and was so much embarrassed by what he saw that he
began to sink and had to strike out violently with arms and legs to prevent
himself from going under. Turning round
in the water, he swam to the ladder, climbed out and, without waiting to dry
himself, hurried to the elevator.
'Really!'
he said to himself as he looked at the Vermeer.
'Really!'
'I did
some business this morning,' said Mr Stoyte when the Baby had straightened
herself up again.
'What
sort of business?'
'Good
business,' he answered. 'Might make a
lot of money. Real money,' he
insisted.
'How
much?'
'Maybe
half a million,' he said cautiously, understating his hopes; 'maybe a million;
maybe even more.'
'Uncle
Joe,' she said. 'I think you're
wonderful.' Her voice had the ring of
complete sincerity. She genuinely did
think him wonderful. In the world in
which she had lived it was axiomatic that a man who could make a million
dollars must be wonderful. Parents,
friends, teachers, newspapers, radio, advertisements - explicitly or by
implication, all were unanimous in proclaiming his wonderfulness. And besides, Virginia was very fond of her Uncle
Jo. He had given her a wonderful time,
and she was grateful. Besides, she liked
to like people if she possibly could; she liked to please them. Pleasing them made her feel good - even when
they were elderly, like Uncle Jo, and when some of the ways in which she was
called upon to please them didn't happen to be very appetizing. 'I think you're wonderful,' she repeated.
Her
admiration gave him an intense satisfaction.
'Oh, it's quite easy,' he said with hypocritical modesty, angling for
more.
Virginia
gave it him. 'Easy, nothing!' she said
firmly. 'I say you are
wonderful. So just keep your mouth
shut.'
Enchanted,
Mr Stoyte took another handful of firm flesh and squeezed it
affectionately. 'I'll give you a
present, if the deal goes through,' he said.
'What would you like, Baby?'
'What
would I like?' she repeated. 'But I
don't want anything.'
Her
disinterestedness was not assumed. For
it was true; she never did want anything this way, in cold blood. At the moment a want occurred, for an ice-cream
soda, for example, for a bit of yum-yum, for a mink coat seen in a shop-window
- at such moments she did want things, and wanted them badly, couldn't wait to
have them. But as for long-range wants,
wants that had to be thought about in advance - no, she never had wanted like
that. The best part of Virginia's life
was spent in enjoying the successive instants of present contentment of which
it was composed; and if ever circumstances forced her out of this mindless
eternity into a world of time, it was a narrow little universe in which she
found herself, a world whose furthest boundaries were never more than a week or
two away in the future. Even as a
show-girl, at eighteen dollars a week, she had found it difficult to bother
much about money and security and what would happen if you had an accident and
couldn't show your legs any more. Then
Uncle Jo had come along, and everything was there, as though it grew on trees -
a swimming-pool tree, a cocktail tree, a Schiaparelli tree. You just had to reach out your hand and there
it was, like an apple in the orchard back home in Oregon. So where did presents come in? Why should she want anything? Besides, it was obvious that Uncle Jo got a
tremendous kick out of her not wanting things; and to be able to give Uncle Jo
a kick always made her feel good. 'I
tell you, Uncle Jo. I don't want anything.'
'Don't
you?' said a strange voice, startling close behind them. 'Well, I do.'
Dark-haired
and dapper, glossily Levantine, Dr Sigmund Obispo stepped briskly up to the
side of the couch.
'To be
precise,' he went on, 'I want to inject one-point-five cubic centimetres of
testosterones into the great man's gluteus medius. So off you go, my angel,' he said to Virginia
in a tone of derision, but with a smile of unabashed desire. 'Hop!'
He gave her a familiar little pat on the shoulder, and another, when she
got up to make room for him, on the white satin posterior.
Virginia
turned round sharply, with the intention of telling him not to be so fresh;
then, as her glance travelled from that barrel of hairy flesh which was Mr
Stoyte to the other's handsome face, so insultingly sarcastic and at the same
time so flatteringly concupiscent, she changed her mind and, instead of telling
him, loudly, just where he got off, she made a grimace and stuck out her tongue
at him. What was begun as a rebuke had
ended, before she knew it, as the acquiescence in an impertinence, as an act of
complicity with the offender and of disloyalty to Uncle Jo. Poor Uncle Jo! she thought, with a rush of
affectionate pity for the old gentleman.
For a moment she felt quite ashamed of herself. The trouble, of course, was that Dr Obispo
was so handsome; that he made her laugh; that she liked his admiration; that it
was fun to lead him on and she how he'd act.
She even enjoyed getting mad at him, when he was rude, which he
constantly was.
'I
suppose you think you're Douglas Fairbanks Junior,' she said, making an attempt
to be scathing; then walked away with as much dignity as her two little strips
of white satin would permit her to assume and, leaning against a battlement,
looked down at the plain below. Ant-like
figures moved among the orange trees.
She wondered idly what they were doing; then her mind wandered to other,
more interesting and personal matters.
To Sig and the fact that she couldn't help feeling rather thrilled when
he was around, even when he acted the way he had done just now. Some day, maybe - some day, just to see what
it was like and if things got a bit dull out here at the castle ... Poor Uncle
Jo! she reflected. But then what could
he expect - at his age and at hers? The
unexpected thing was that, in all these months, she hadn't yet given him any
reason for being jealous - unless, of course, you counted Enid and Mary Lou;
which she didn't; because she really wasn't that way at all; and when it did
happen, it was nothing more than a kind of little accident; nice, but not a bit
important. Whereas with Sig, if it ever
happened, the thing would be different; even though it weren't very serious;
which it wouldn't be - not like with Walt, for example, or even with little
Buster back in Portland. It would be
different from the accidents with Enid and Mary Lou, because, with a man, those
things generally did matter a good deal, even when you didn't mean them to
matter. Which was the only reason for
not doing them, outside of their being sins, of course; but somehow that never
seemed to count very much when the boy was a real good looker (which one had to
admit Sig was, even though it was rather in the style of Adolphe Menjou; but,
come to think of it, it was those dark ones with oil on their hair that had
always given her the biggest kick!). And
when you'd had a couple of drinks, maybe, and you felt you'd like some thrills,
why, then it never even occurred to you that it was a sin; and then the one
thing led to another, and before you knew what had happened - well, it had happened;
and really she just couldn't believe it was as bad as Father O'Reilly said it
was; and, anyhow, Our Lady would be a lot more understanding and forgiving than
he was; and what about the way Father O'Reilly ate his food, whenever he came
to dinner? - like a hog, there wasn't any other word for it; and wasn't
gluttony just as bad as the other thing?
So who was he to talk like that?
'Well,
and how's the patient?' Dr Obispo enquired in the parody of a bedside manner,
as he took Virginia's place on the couch.
He was in the highest of spirits.
His work in the laboratory was coming along unexpectedly well; that new
preparation of bile salts had done wonders for his liver; the rearmament boom
had sent his aircraft shares up another three points; and it was obvious that
Virginia wasn't going to hold out much longer.
'How's the little invalid this morning?' he went on, enriching his
parody with the caricature of an English accent; for he had done a year of
post-graduate work at Oxford.
Mr Stoyte
growled inarticulately. There was
something about Dr Obispo's facetiousness that always enraged him. In some not easily definable way it had the
quality of a deliberate insult. Mr
Stoyte was always made to feel that Obispo's apparently good-natured banter was
in reality the expression of a calculated and malignant contempt. The thought of it made Mr Stoyte's blood
boil. But when his blood boiled, his
blood-pressure, he knew, went up, his life was shortened. He could not afford to be as angry with
Obispo as he would have liked. And what
was more, he couldn't afford to get rid of the man. Obispo was an indispensable evil. 'God is love; there is no death.' But Mr Stoyte remembered with terror that he
had had a stroke, that he was growing old.
Obispo had put him on his feet again when he was almost dying, had
promised him ten more years of life even if those researches didn't work out as
well as he hoped. Twenty years, thirty,
forty. Or it might even be that
loathsome little kike would find some way of proving that Mrs Eddy was right,
after all. Perhaps there really and
truly wouldn't be any death - not for Uncle Jo, at any rate. Glorious prospect! Meanwhile ... Mr Stoyte sighed, resignedly,
profoundly. 'We all have our cross to
bear,' he said to himself, echoing, across the intervening years, the words his
grandmother used to repeat when she made him take castor oil.
Dr
Obispo, meanwhile, had sterilized his needle, filed the top off a glass
ampoule, filled his syringe. His
movements, as he worked, were characterized by a certain studied exquisiteness,
by a florid and self-conscious precision.
It was as though the man were simultaneously his own ballet and his own
audience - a sophisticated and highly critical audience, it was true; but then,
what a ballet; Nijinsky, Karsavina, Pavlova, Massine - all on a single
stage. However terrific the applause, it
was always merited.
'Ready,'
he called at last.
Obediently
and in silence, like a trained elephant, Mr Stoyte rolled over on to his
stomach.
CHAPTER FIVE
Jeremy had dressed again and was sitting in the
subterranean store-room that was to serve as his study. The dry acrid dust of old documents had done
to his head, like a kind of intoxicating snuff.
His face was flushed as he prepared his files and sharpened his pencils;
his bald head shone with perspiration; behind their bifocal lenses his eyes
were bright with excitement.
There! Everything was ready. He turned round in his swivel-chair and sat
for a little while quite still, voluptuously savouring his anticipations. Tied up in innumerable brown-paper parcels,
the Hauberk Papers awaited their first reader.
Twenty-seven crates of still unravished brides of quietness. He smiled to himself at the thought that he
was to be their Bluebeard. Thousands of
brides of quietness accumulated through centuries by successive generations of
indefatigable Hauberks. Hauberk after
Hauberk; barony after knighthood; earldom after barony; and then Earl of
Gonister after Earl of Gonister down to the last, the eighth. And, after the eighth, nothing but death-duties
and an old house and two old spinster ladies, sinking ever deeper into solitude
and eccentricity, into poverty and family pride, but finally, poor pets! more
deeply into poverty than pride. They had
sworn they would never sell; but in the end they had accepted Mr Stoyte's
offer. The papers had been shipped to
California. They would be able, now, to
buy themselves a couple of really sumptuous funerals. And that would be the end of the
Hauberks. Delicious fragment of English
history! Cautionary perhaps, or perhaps,
and more probably, merely senseless, merely a tale told by an idiot. A tale of cut-throats and conspirators, of
patrons of learning and shady speculators, of bishops and kings' catamites and
minor poets, of admirals and pimps, of saints and heroines and nymphomaniacs,
of imbeciles and prime ministers, of art collectors and sadists. And here was all that remained of them, in
twenty-seven crates, higgledy-piggledy, never catalogued, never even looked at,
utterly virgin. Gloating over his
treasure, Jeremy forgot the fatigues of the journey, forgot Los Angeles and the
chauffeur, forgot the cemetery and the castle, forgot even Mr Stoyte. He had the Hauberk Papers, had them all to
himself. Like a child dipping blindly
into a bran pie for a present which he knows will be exciting, Jeremy picked up
one of the brown-paper parcels with which the first crate was filled and cut
the string. What rich confusion awaited
him within! A book of household accounts
for the year 1576 and 1577; a narrative by some Hauberk cadet of Sir Kenelm
Digby's expedition to Scanderoon; eleven letters in Spanish from Miguel de
Molinos to that Lady Ann Hauberk who had scandalized her family by turning
papist; a collection, in early eighteenth-century handwriting, of sickroom
recipes, a copy of Drelincourt's On Death; and an odd volume of Andréa
de Nerciat's Félicia, ou Mes Fredaines.
He had just cut the string of the second bundle and was wondering whose
was the lock of pale brown hair preserved between the pages of the Third Earl's
holograph Reflections on the Late Popish Plot, when there was a knock at the
door. He looked up and saw a small, dark
man in a white overall advancing towards him.
The stranger smiled, said 'Don't let me disturb you,' but nevertheless
disturbed him. 'My name's Obispo,' he
went on, 'Dr Sigmund Obispo: Physician in ordinary to His Majesty King Stoyte
the First - and let's hope also the last.'
Evidently
delighted by his own joke, he broke into a peal of startlingly loud metallic
laughter. Then, with the elegantly
fastidious gesture of an aristocrat in a dust-heap, he picked up one of
Molinos's letters and started, slowly, and out loud, to decipher the first line
of the flowing seventeenth-century calligraphy that met his eyes. '"Ame a Dios como es en sî y no como
se lo dice y forma su imaginación."'
He looked up at Jeremy with an amused smile. 'Easier said than done, I should think. Why, you can't even love a woman as she is in
herself; and after all, there is some sort of objective physical basis for the
phenomenon we call a female. A pretty
nice basis in some cases. Whereas poor
old Dios is only a spirit - in other words, pure imagination. And here's this idiot, whoever he is, telling
some other idiot that people mustn't love God as he is in their
imagination.' Once again
self-consciously the aristocrat, he threw down the letter with a contemptuous
flick of the wrist. 'What drivel it all
is!' he went on. 'A string of words
called religion. Another string of words
called philosophy. Half a dozen other
strings called political ideals. And all
the words either ambiguous or meaningless.
And people getting so excited about them they'll murder their neighbours
for using a word they don't happen to like.
A word that probably doesn't mean as much as a good belch. Just a noise without even the excuse of gas
on the stomach. "Ame a Dios como
es en sî,"' he repeated derisively.
'It's about as sensible as saying "hiccough a hiccough como es
en hiccough." I don't know how
you litterae humaniores boys manage to stand it. Don't you pine for some sense once in a
while?'
Jeremy
smiled with an expression of nervous apology.
'One doesn't bother too much about the meanings,' he said. Then, anticipating further criticism by disparaging
himself and the things he loved most dearly, 'One gets a lot of fun, you know,'
he went on, 'just scrabbling about in the dust-heaps.'
Dr Obispo
laughed and patted Jeremy encouragingly on the shoulders. 'Good for you!' he said. 'You're frank. I like that.
Most of the Ph.D. boys one meets are such damned Pecksniffs. Trying to pull that high-moral culture stuff
on you! You know: wisdom rather than
knowledge; Sophocles instead of science.
"Funny," I always say to them when they try that on me,
"funny that the thing you get your income from should happen to be the
thing that's going to save humanity."
Whereas you don't try to glorify your little racket. You're honest. You admit you're in the thing merely for the
fun of it. Well, that's why I'm in my
little racket. For the fun. Though, of course, if you'd given me any of
that Sophocles stuff, I'd just have let you have my piece about science and
progress, science and happiness, even science and ultimate truth, if you'd been
obstinate.' He showed his white teeth in
a happy derision of everybody.
His
amusement was infectious. Jeremy also
smiled. 'I'm glad I wasn't obstinate,'
he said in a tone whose fluty demureness implied how much he objected to
disquisitions on ultimate truth.
'Mind you,'
Dr Obispo went on, 'I'm not entirely blind to the charms of your racket. I'd draw the line at Sophocles, of
course. And I'd be deadly bored with
this sort of stuff' - he nodded towards the twenty-seven crates. 'But I must admit,' he concluded handsomely,
'I've had a lot of fun out of old books in my time. Really, a lot of fun.'
Jeremy
coughed and caressed his scalp; his eyes twinkled in anticipation of the
deliciously dry little joke he was just about to make. But, unfortunately, Dr Obispo gave him no
time. Serenely unaware of Jeremy's
preparations he looked at his watch; then rose to his feet. 'I'd like to show you my laboratory,' he
said. 'There's plenty of time before
lunch.'
'Instead
of asking if I'd like to see his bloody laboratory,' Jeremy protested inwardly,
as he swallowed his joke; and it had been such a good one! He would have liked, of course, to go on
unpacking the Hauberk Papers; but, lacking the courage to say so, he rose
obediently and followed Dr Obispo towards the door.
Longevity,
the doctor explained, as they left the room.
That was his subject. Had been
ever since he left medical school. But,
of course, so long as he was in practice he hadn't been able to do any serious
work on it. Practice was fatal to
serious work, he added parenthetically.
How could you do anything sensible, when you had to spend all your time
looking after patients? Patients
belonged to three classes: those that imagined they were sick, but weren't;
those that were sick, but would get well anyhow; those that were sick and would
be much better dead. For anybody capable
of serious work to waste his time with patients was simply idiotic. And, of course, nothing but economic pressure
would ever have driven him to do it. And
he might have gone on in that groove for ever.
Wasting himself on morons. But
then, quite suddenly, his luck had turned.
Jo Stoyte had come to consult him.
It had been positively providential.
'Most
awfully a godsend,' Jeremy murmured, quoting his favourite phrase of Coleridge.
Jo
Stoyte, Dr Obispo repeated, Jo Stoyte on the verge of breaking up
completely. Forty pounds overweight and
having had a stroke. Not a bad one,
luckily; but enough to put the old bastard into a sweat. Talk of being scared to death! (Dr Obispo's white teeth flashed again in
wolfish good-humour.) In Jo's case it
had been a panic. Out of that panic had
come Dr Obispo's liberation from his patients; had come his income, his
laboratory for work on the problems of longevity, his excellent assistant; had
come, too, the financing of that pharmaceutical work at Berkeley, of those
experiments with monkeys in Brazil, of that expedition to study the tortoises
on the Galapagos Islands. Everything a
research worker could ask for, with old Jo himself thrown in as the perfect
guinea-pig - ready to submit to practically anything short of vivisection
without anaesthetics, provided it offered him some hope of keeping him above
ground a few years longer.
Not that
he was doing anything spectacular with the old buzzard at the moment. Just keeping his weight down; and taking care
of his kidneys; and pepping him up with periodical shots of synthetic sex
hormone; and watching out for those arteries.
The ordinary, common-sense treatment for a man of Jo Stoyte's age and
medical history. Meanwhile, however, he
was on the track of something new, something that promised to be
important. In a few months, perhaps in a
few weeks, he'd be in a position to make a definite pronouncement.
'That's
very interesting,' said Jeremy with hypocritical politeness.
They were
walking along a narrow corridor, white-washed and bleakly illuminated by a
series of electric bulbs. Through open
doors Jeremy had occasional glimpses of vast cellars crammed with totem poles
and armour, with stuffed orang-utans and marble groups by Thorwaldsen, with
gilded Bodhisattvas and early steam-engines, with lingams and stagecoaches and
Peruvian pottery, with crucifixes and mineralogical specimens.
Dr
Obispo, meanwhile, had begun to talk again about longevity. The subject, he insisted, was still in the
pre-scientific stage. A lot of
observations without any explanatory hypothesis. A mere chaos of facts. And what odd, what essentially eccentric
facts! What was it, for example, that
made a cicada live as long as a bull? or a canary outlast three generations of
sheep? Why should dogs be senile at
fourteen and parrots sprightly at a hundred?
Why should female humans become sterile in the forties, while female
crocodiles continued to lay eggs into their third century? Why in heaven's name should a pike live to
two hundred without showing any signs of senility? Whereas poor old Jo Stoyte ...
From a
side passage two men suddenly emerged carrying between them on a stretcher a
couple of mummified nuns. There was a
collision.
'Damned
fools!' Dr Obispo shouted angrily.
'Damned
fool yourself!'
'Can't
you look where you're going?'
'Keep
your face shut!'
Dr Obispo
turned contemptuously away and walked on.
'Who the
hell do you think you are?' they called after him.
Jeremy
meanwhile had been looking with lively curiosity at the mummies. 'Discalced Carmelites,' he said to nobody in
particular; and enjoying the flavour of that curious combination of syllables,
he repeated them with a certain emphatic relish. 'Discalced Carmelites.'
'Discalced
your ass,' said the foremost of the two men, turning fiercely upon this new
antagonist.
Jeremy
gave one glance at that red and angry face, then, with ignominious haste,
hurried after his guide.
Dr Obispo
halted at last. 'Here we are,' he said,
opening a door. A smell of mice and
absolute alcohol floated out into the corridor.
'Come on in,' he said cordially.
Jeremy
entered. There were the mice all right -
cage upon cage of them, in tiers along the wall directly in front of him. To the left, three windows, hewn in the rock,
gave on to the tennis-court and a distant panorama of orange trees and
mountains. Seated at a table in front of
one of these windows, a man was looking through a microscope. He raised his fair, tousled head as they
approached, and turned towards them a face of almost child-like candour and
openness. 'Hullo, doc,' he said with a
charming smile.
'My
assistant,' Dr Obispo explained. 'Peter
Boone. Pete, this is Mr Pordage.' Pete rose and revealed himself an athletic
young giant.
'Call me
Pete,' he said, when Jeremy had called him Mr Boone. 'Everyone calls me Pete.'
Jeremy
wondered whether he ought to invite the young man to call him Jeremy - but
wondered, as usual, so long that the appropriate moment for doing so passed,
irrevocably.
'Pete's a
bright boy,' Dr Obispo began again in a tone that was affectionate in
intention, but a little patronizing too.
'Knows his physiology. Good with
his hands, too. Best mouse surgeon I
ever saw.' He patted the young man on
the shoulder.
Pete
smiled - a little uncomfortably, it seemed to Jeremy, as though he found it
rather difficult to make the right response to the other's cordiality.
'Takes
his politics a bit too seriously,' Dr Obispo went on. 'That's his only defect. I'm trying to cure him of that. Not very successfully so far, I'm
afraid. Eh, Pete?'
The young
man smiled again, more confidently; this time he knew exactly where he stood
and what to do.
'Not very
successfully,' he repeated. Then,
turning to Jeremy, 'Did you see the Spanish news this morning?' he asked. The expression on his large, fair, open face
changed to one of concern.
Jeremy
shook his head.
'It's
something awful,' said Pete gloomily.
'When I think of those poor devils without planes or artillery or ...'
'Well,
don't think of them,' Dr Obispo cheerfully advised. 'You'll feel better.'
The young
man looked at him, then looked away again without saying anything. After a moment of silence he pulled out his watch. 'I think I'll go and have a swim before
lunch,' he said, and walked towards the door.
Dr Obispo
picked up a cage of mice and held it within a few inches of Jeremy's nose. 'These are the sex-hormone boys,' he said
with a jocularity that the other found curiously offensive. The animals squeaked as he shook the
cage. 'Lively enough while the effect
lasts. The trouble is that the effects
are only temporary.'
Not that
temporary effects were to be despised, he added, as he replaced the cage. It was always better to feel temporarily good
than temporarily bad. That was why he
was giving old Jo a course of that testosterone stuff. Not that the old bastard had any great need
of it with that Maunciple girl around....
Dr Obispo
suddenly put his hand over his mouth and looked round towards the window. 'Thank God,' he said, 'he's out of the
room. Poor old Pete!' A derisive smile appeared on his face. 'Is he in love!' He tapped his forehead. 'Thinks she's like something in the Works of
Tennyson. You know, chemically
pure. Last month he nearly killed a man
for suggesting that she and the old boy ... Well, you know. God knows what he figures the girl is doing
here. Telling Uncle Jo about the spiral
nebulae, I suppose. Well, if it makes
him happy to think that way, I'm not the one that's going to spoil his
fun.' Dr Obispo laughed
indulgently. 'But to come back to what I
was saying about Uncle Jo....'
Just
having that girl around the house was the equivalent of a hormone
treatment. But it wouldn't last. It never did.
Brown-Séquard and Voronoff and all the rest of them - they'd been on the
wrong track. They'd thought that the
decay of sexual power was the cause of senility. Whereas it was only one of the symptoms. Senescence started somewhere else and
involved the sex mechanism along with the rest of the body. Hormone treatments were just palliatives and
pick-me-ups. Helped you for a time, but
didn't prevent your growing old.
Jeremy
stifled a yawn.
For
example, Dr Obispo went on, why should some animals live much longer than human
beings and yet show no signs of old age?
Somehow, somewhere we had made a biological mistake. Crocodiles had avoided that mistake; so had
tortoises. The same was true of certain
species of fish.
'Look at
this,' he said; and, crossing the room, he drew back a rubber curtain,
revealing as he did so the glass front of a large aquarium recessed into the
wall. Jeremy approached and looked in.
In the
green and shadowy translucence, two huge fish hung suspended, their snouts
almost touching, motionless except for the occasional ripple of a fin and the
rhythmic panting of their gills. A few
inches from their staring eyes a rosary of bubbles streamed ceaselessly up
towards the light, and all around them the water was spasmodically silver with
the dartings of smaller fish. Sunk in
their mindless ecstasy, the monsters paid no attention.
Carp, Dr
Obispo explained; carp from the fishponds of a castle in Franconia - he had
forgotten the name; but it was somewhere near Bamberg. The family was impoverished; but the fish
were heirlooms, unpurchasable. Jo Stoyte
had had to spend a lot of money to have these two stolen and smuggled out of
the country in a specially constructed automobile with a tank under the back
seats. Sixty-pounds they were; over four
feet long; and those rings in their tails were dated 1761.
'The
beginning of my period,' Jeremy murmured in a sudden access of interest. 1761 was the year of Fingal. He smiled to himself; the juxtaposition of
carp and Ossian, carp and Napoleon's favourite poet, carp and the first
premonitions of the Celtic Twilight, gave him a peculiar pleasure. What a delightful subject for one of his
little essays! Twenty pages of erudition
and absurdity - of sacrilege in lavender - of a scholar's delicately canaille
irreverence for the illustrious or unillustrious dead.
But Dr
Obispo would not allow him to think his thoughts in peace. Indefatigably riding his own hobby, he began
again. There they were; and there were
you. He turned back accusingly towards
Jeremy. Here were you; no more than
middle-aged, but already bald, already long-sighted and short-winded; already
more or less edentate; incapable of prolonged physical exertion; chronically constipated
(could you deny it?); your memory already not so good as it was; your digestion
capricious; your potency falling off - if it hadn't, indeed, already
disappeared for good.
Jeremy
forced himself to smile, and at every fresh item nodded his head in what was
meant to look like an amused assent.
Inwardly, he was writhing with a mixture of distress at this all too
truthful diagnosis and anger against the diagnostician for the ruthlessness of
his scientific detachment. Talking with
a humorous self-deprecation about one's own advancing senility was very
different from being bluntly told about it by someone who took no interest in
you except as an animal that happened to be unlike a fish. Nevertheless, he continued to nod and smile.
Here you
were, Dr Obispo repeated at the end of his diagnosis, and there were the
carp. How was it that you didn't manage
your physiological affairs as well as they did?
Just where and how and why did you make the mistake that had already
robbed you of your teeth and hair and would bring you in a very few years to
the grave?
Old
Metchnikoff had asked those questions and made a bold attempt to answer.
Everything he said happened to be wrong: phagocytosis didn't occur;
intestinal autointoxication wasn't the sole cause of senility; neuronophags
were mythological monsters; drinking sour milk didn't materially prolong life;
whereas the removal of the large gut did materially shorten it. Chuckling, he recalled those operations that
were so fashionable just before the War!
Old ladies and gentlemen with their colons cut out, and in consequence
being forced to evacuate every few minutes, like canaries! All to no purpose, needless to say; because
of course the operation that was meant to make them live to a hundred killed
them all off within a year or two. Dr
Obispo threw back his glossy head and uttered one of those peals of brazen
laughter which were his regular response to any tale of human stupidity
resulting in misfortune. Poor old
Metchnikoff, he went on, wiping the tears of merriment from his eyes. Consistently wrong. And yet almost certainly not nearly so wrong
as people had thought. Wrong, yes, in
supposing that it was all a matter of intestinal stasis and autointoxication. But probably right in thinking that the
secret was somewhere down there, in the gut.
Somewhere in the gut, Dr Obispo repeated; and, what was more, he
believed that he was on its track.
He paused
and stood for a moment in silence, drumming with his fingers on the glass of
the aquarium. Poised between mud and
air, the two obese and aged carps hung in their greenish twilight, serenely
unaware of him. Dr Obispo shook his head
at them. The worst experimental animals
in the world, he said in a tone of resentment mingled with a certain gloomy
pride. Nobody had a right to talk about
technical difficulties who hadn't tried to work with fish. Take the simplest operation; it was a
nightmare. Had you ever tried to keep
its gills properly wet while it was anaesthetized on the operating-table? Or, alternatively, to do your surgery under
water? Had you ever set out to determine
a fish's basal metabolism, or take an electro-cardiograph of its heart action,
or measure its blood-pressure? Had you
ever wanted to analyse its excreta? And,
if so, did you know how hard it was even to collect them? Had you ever attempted to study the chemistry
of a fish's digestion and assimilation?
To determine its blood-pressure under different conditions? To measure the speed of its nervous
reactions?
No, you
had not, said Dr Obispo contemptuously.
And until you had, you had no right to complain about anything.
He drew
the curtain on his fish, took Jeremy by the arm and led him back to the mice.
'Look at
those,' he said, pointing to a batch of cages on an upper shelf.
Jeremy
looked. The mice in question were
exactly like all other mice. 'What's
wrong with them?' he asked.
Dr Obispo
laughed. 'If those animals were human
beings,' he said dramatically, 'they'd all be over a hundred years old.'
And he
began to talk, very rapidly and excitedly, about fatty alcohols and the
intestinal flora of carp. For the secret
was there, the key to the whole problem of senility and longevity. There, between the sterols and the peculiar
flora of the carp's intestine.
Those
stools! (Dr Obispo frowned and shook his
head over them.) Always linked up with
senility. The most obvious case, of
course, was cholesterol. A senile animal
might be defined as one with an accumulation of cholesterol in the walls of its
arteries. Potassium thiocyanate seemed
to dissolve those accumulations. Senile
rabbits would show signs of rejuvenation under a treatment with potassium
thiocyanate. So would senile
humans. But, again, not for very
long. Cholesterol in the arteries was
evidently only one of the troubles. But
then cholesterol was only one of the sterols.
They were a closely related group, those fatty alcohols. It didn't take much to transform one into
another. But if you'd read old
Schneeglock's work and the stuff they'd been publishing at Upsala, you'd know
that some of the sterols were definitely poisonous - much more than
cholesterol, even in large accumulations.
Longbotham had even suggested a connection between fatty alcohols and
neoplasms. In other words, cancer might
be regarded, in a final analysis, as a symptom of sterol-poisoning. He himself would go even further and say that
such sterol-poisoning was responsible for the entire degenerative process of
senescence in man and the other mammals.
What nobody had done hitherto was to look into the part played by fatty
alcohols in the life of such animals as carp.
That was the work he had been doing for the last year. His researches had convinced him of two or
three things: first, that the fatty alcohols in carp did not accumulate in
excessive quantity; second, that they did not undergo transformation into the
more poisonous sterols; and third, that both these immunities were due to the
peculiar nature of the carp's intestinal flora.
What a flora! Dr Obispo cried enthusiastically. So rich, so wonderfully varied. He had not yet succeeded in isolating the
organism responsible for the carp's immunity to old age, nor did he fully
understand the nature of the chemical mechanisms involved. Nevertheless, the main fact was certain. In one way or another, in combination or in
isolation, these organisms contrived to keep the fish's sterols from turning
into poisons. That was why a carp could
live a couple of hundred years and show no signs of senility.
Could the
intestinal flora of a carp be transferred to the gut of a mammal? And, if transferable, would it achieve the
same chemical and biological results?
That was what he had been trying, for the past few months, to
discover. With no success, to begin
with. Recently, however, they had
experimented with a new technique - a technique that protected the flora from
the process of digestion, gave it time to adapt itself to the unfamiliar
conditions. It had taken root. The effect on the mice had been immediate and
significant. Senescence had been halted,
even reversed. Physiologically, the
animals were younger than they had been for at least eighteen months - younger
at the equivalent of a hundred than they had been at the equivalent of sixty.
Outside
in the corridor an electric bell began to ring.
It was lunch-time. The two men
left the room and walked towards the elevator.
Dr Obispo went on talking. Mice,
he said, were apt to be a bit deceptive.
He had now begun to try the thing out on larger animals. If it worked all right on dogs and baboons,
it ought to work on Uncle Jo.
CHAPTER SIX
In the small dining-room, most of the furnishings came
from the Pavilion at Brighton. Four
gilded dragons supported the red lacquered table, and two more served as
caryatids on either side of a chimney-piece in the same material. It was the Regency's dream of the Gorgeous
East. The kind of thing, Jeremy
reflected, as he sat down on his scarlet and gold chair, the kind of thing that
the word 'Cathay' would have conjured up in Keats's mind, for example, or
Shelley's, or Lord Byron's - just as that charming 'Leda' by Etty, over there,
next to the Fra Angelico's 'Annunciation,' was an accurate embodiment of their
fancies on the subject of pagan mythology; was an authentic illustration (he
chuckled inwardly at the thought) to the Odes to Psyche and the Grecian Urn, to
Endymion and Prometheus Unbound.
An age's habits of thought and feeling and imagination are shared by all
who live and work within that age - by all, from the journeyman up to the
genius. Regency is always Regency,
whether you take your sample from the top of the basket or from the
bottom. In 1820, the man who shut his
eyes and tried to visualize magic casements opening on the foam of faery seas
would see - what? The turrets of
Brighton Pavilion. At the thought,
Jeremy smiled to himself with pleasure. Etty and Keats, Brighton and Percy
Bysshe Shelley - what a delightful subject!
Much better than carp and Ossian; better inasmuch as Nash and Prince
Regent were funnier than even the most aged fish. But for conversational purposes and at the
luncheon-table, even the best of subjects is worthless if there is nobody to
discuss it with. And who was there,
Jeremy asked himself, who was there in this room desirous or capable of talking
with him on such a theme? Not Mr Stoyte;
not, certainly, Miss Maunciple, nor the two young women who had come over from
Hollywood to have lunch with her; not Dr Obispo, who cared more for mice than
books; nor Peter Boone, who probably didn't even know that there were any books
to care for. The only person who might
conceivably be expected to take an interest in the manifestations of the
later-Georgian time spirit was the individual who had been introduced to him as
Dr Herbert Mulge, Ph.D., D.D., Principal of Tarzana College. But at the moment Dr Mulge was talking in a
rich vein of something that sounded almost like pulpit eloquence about the new
Auditorium which Mr Stoyte had just presented to the College and which was
shortly to be given its formal opening.
Dr Mulge was a large and handsome man with a voice to match - a voice at
once sonorous and suave, unctuous and ringing.
The flow of his language was slow, but steady and apparently
stanchless. In phrases full of the
audible equivalents of Capital Letters, he now went on to assure Mr Stoyte and
anyone else who cared to listen that it would be a Real Inspiration for the
boys and girls of Tarzana to come together in the beautiful new building for
their Community Activities. For
Non-Denominational Worship, for example; for the Enjoyment of the Best in Drama
and Music. Yes, what an
inspiration! The name of Stoyte would be
remembered with love and reverence by successive generations of the College's
Alumni and Alumnae, - would be remembered, he might say, for ever; for the
Auditorium was a monumentum aere perennius, a Footprint of the Sand of
Time - definitely a Footprint. And now,
Dr Mulge continued, between the mouthfuls of cream chicken, now Tarzana's
Crying Need was for a new Art School.
Because, after all, Art, as we were now discovering, was one of the most
potent of educational forces. Art was
the aspect under which, in this twentieth century of ours, the Religious Spirit
most clearly manifested itself. Art was
the means by which Personalities could best achieve Creative Self-Expression
and ...
'Cripes!'
Jeremy said to himself; and then: 'Golly!'
He smiled ruefully at the thought that he hoped to talk to this imbecile
about the relation between Keats and Brighton Pavilion.
Peter
Boone found himself separated from Virginia by the blonder of her two young
friends from Hollywood, so that he could only look at her past a foreground of
rouge and eyelashes, of golden curls and a thick, almost visible perfume of
gardenias. To anyone else, this foreground
might have seemed a bit distracting; but for Pete it was of no more
significance than the equivalent amount of mud.
He was interested only in what was beyond the foreground - in that
exquisitely abbreviated upper lip, in the little nose that made you want to cry
when you looked at it, it was so elegant and impertinent, so ridiculous and
angelic; in that long Florentine bob of lustrous auburn hair; in those
wide-set, widely opened eyes with their twinkling surface of humour and their
dark blue depths of what he was sure was an infinite tenderness, a plumbless
feminine wisdom. He loved her so much
that, where his heart should have been he could feel only an aching
breathlessness, a cavity which she alone could fill.
Meanwhile,
she was talking to the blonde Foreground about that new job which the
Foreground had landed with the Cosmopolitan-Perlmutter Studio. The picture was called 'Say it with
Stockings,' and the Foreground was to play the part of a rich débutante who
runs away from home to make a career of her own, becomes a striptease dander in
a Western mining-camp and finally marries a cow-puncher, who turns out to be
the son of a millionaire.
'Sounds
like a swell story,' said Virginia.
'Don't you think so, Pete?'
Pete
thought so; he was ready to think almost anything if she wanted him to.
'That
reminds me of Spain,' Virginia announced.
And while Jeremy, who had been eavesdropping on the conversation,
frantically tried to imagine what train of associations had taken her from 'Say
it with Stockings' to the civil war - whether it had been
Cosmopolitan-Perlmutter, Anti-Semitism, Nazis, Franco; or débutante, class war,
Moscow, Negrin; or striptease, modernity, radicalism, Republicans - while he
was vainly speculating thus, Virginia went on to ask the young man to tell them
about what he had done in Spain; and when he demurred, insisted - because it
was so thrilling, because the Foreground had never heard about it, because,
finally, she wanted him to.
Pete
obeyed. Only half-articulately, in a
vocabulary composed of slang and clichés, and adorned by expletives and grunts
- the vocabulary, Jeremy reflected as he listened surreptitiously through the
booming of Dr Mulge's eloquence, the characteristically squalid and
poverty-stricken vocabulary to which the fear of being thought unsocially different
or undemocratically superior, or unsportingly highbrow, condemns most young
Englishmen and Americans - he began to describe his experiences as a volunteer
in the International Brigade during the heroic days of 1937. It was a touching narrative. Through the hopelessly inadequate language,
Jeremy could divine the young man's enthusiasm for liberty and justice; his
courage; his love for his comrades; his nostalgia, even in the neighbourhood of
that short upper lip, even in the midst of an absorbing piece of scientific
research, for the life of men united in devotion to a cause, made one in the
face of hardship and shared danger and impending death.
'Gee,' he
kept repeating, 'they were swell guys.'
They were
all swell - Knud, who had saved his life one day, up there in Aragon; Anton and
Mack and poor little Dino, who had been killed; André, who had lost a leg; Jan,
who had a wife and two children; Fritz, who'd had six months in a Nazi
concentration camp; and all the others - the finest bunch of boys in the
world. And what did he do, but go and
get rheumatic fever on them, and then myocarditis - which meant no more active
service; no more anything except sitting around. That was why he was here, he explained
apologetically. But, gee, it had been
good while it lasted! That time, for
example, when he and Knud had gone out at night and climbed a precipice in the
dark and taken a whole platoon of Moors by surprise and killed half a dozen of
them and come back with a machine-gun and three prisoners....
'And what
is your opinion of Creative Work, Mr Pordage?'
Surprised
in flagrant inattention, Jeremy started guiltily. 'Creative work?' he mumbled, trying to gain a
little time. 'Creative work? Well, of course one's all for it. Definitely,' he insisted.
'I'm glad
to hear you say so,' said Dr Mulge.
'Because that's what I want at Tarzana. Creative work - ever more and more
Creative. Shall I tell you what is my
highest ambition?' Neither Mr Stoyte nor
Jeremy made any reply. But Dr Mulge
proceeded, nevertheless, to tell them.
'it is to make of Tarzana the living Centre of the New Civilization that
is coming to blossom here in the West.'
He raised a large fleshy hand in solemn asseveration. 'The Athens of the twentieth century is on
the point of emerging here, in the Los Angeles Metropolitan Area. I want Tarzana to be its Parthenon and its
Academe, its Stoa and its Temple of the Muses.
Religion, Art, Philosophy, Science - I want them all to find their home
in Tarzana, to radiate their influence from our campus, to ...'
In the
middle of his story about the Moors and the precipice, Pete became aware that
only the Foreground was listening to him.
Virginia's attention had wandered, surreptitiously at first, then
frankly and avowedly - had wandered to where, on her left, the less blonde of
her two friends was having something almost whispered to her by Dr Obispo.
'What's
that?' Virginia asked.
Dr Obispo
leaned towards her and began again. The
three heads, the oil-smooth black, the elaborately curly brown, the lustrous
auburn, were almost touching. By the
expression on their faces Pete could see that the doctor was telling one of his
dirty stories. Alleviated for a moment
by the smile she had given him when she asked him to tell them about Spain, the
anguish in that panting void where his heart ought to have been came back with
redoubled intensity. It was a
complicated pain, made up of jealousy and a despairing sense of loss and
personal unworthiness, of a fear that his angel was being corrupted and another,
deeper fear, which his conscious mind refused to formulate, a fear that the
angel was not as angelic as his love had made him assume. The flow of his narrative suddenly dried
up. He was silent.
'Well,
what happened then?' the Foreground enquired with an eagerness and an
expression of hero-worshipping admiration that any other young man would have
found delightfully flattering.
He shook
his head. 'Oh, nothing much.'
'But
those Moors ...'
'Hell!'
he said impatiently. 'What does it
matter, anyhow?'
His words
were drowned by a violent explosion of laughter that sent the three
conspiratorial heads, the black, the brown, the lovely auburn, flying apart
from one another. He looked up at
Virginia and saw a face distorted with mirth.
At what? he asked himself in agony, trying to measure the extent of her
corruption; and a kind of telescoped and synthetic memory of all the schoolboy
stories, all the jokes and limericks he had ever heard, rushed in upon him.
Was it at
that one that she was laughing? Or at
that? Or, God, perhaps at that;
and the more he hoped and prayed, the more insanely sure he became that that
was the one it had been.
'...
above all,' Dr Mulge was saying, 'Creative Work in the Arts. Hence the crying need for a new Art School,
an Art School worthy of Tarzana, worthy of the highest traditions of ...'
The
girls' shrill laughter exploded with a force of hilarity proportionate to the
strength of the surrounding social taboos.
Mr Stoyte turned sharply in the direction from which the noise had come.
'What's
the joke?' he asked suspiciously. He
wasn't going to have his Baby listen to smut.
He disapproved of smut in mixed company almost as wholeheartedly as his
grandmother, the Plymouth Sister, had done.
'What's all that noise about?'
It was Dr
Obispo who answered. He'd been telling
them a funny story he'd heard over the radio, he explained with suave
politeness that was like a sarcasm.
Something delightfully amusing.
Perhaps Mr Stoyte would like to have him repeat it.
Mr Stoyte
grunted ferociously and turned away.
A glance
at his host's scowling face convinced Dr Mulge that it would be better to
postpone discussion of the Art School to another, more propitious
occasion. It was disappointing; for it
seemed to him that he had been making good progress. But, there! such things would happen. Dr Mulge was a college president chronically
in quest of endowments; he knew all about the rich. Knew, for example, that they were like
gorillas, creatures not easily domesticated, deeply suspicious, alternately
bored and bad-tempered. You had to
approach them with caution, to handle them gently and with a boundless
cunning. And even then they might
suddenly turn savage on you and show their teeth. Half a lifetime of experience with bankers and
steel-magnates and retired meat-packers had taught Dr Mulge to take such little
setbacks as today's with a truly philosophic patience. Brightly, with a smile on his large,
imperial-Roman face, he turned to Jeremy.
'And what do you think of our Californian weather, Mr Pordage?' he
asked.
Meanwhile,
Virginia had noticed the expression on Pete's face and immediately divined the
causes of his misery. Poor Pete! But really, if he thought she had nothing
better to do than always be listening to his talk about that silly old war in
Spain - or if it wasn't Spain, it was the laboratory; and they did vivisection
there, which was just awful; because, after all, when you were hunting, the
animals had a chance of getting away, particularly if you were a bad shot, like
she was; besides, hunting was full of thrills and you got such a kick from
being up there in the mountains in the good air; whereas Pete cut them up
underground in that cellar place.... No, if he thought she had nothing better
to do than that, he made a big mistake.
All the same, he was a nice boy; and talk about being in love! It was nice having people around who felt
that way about you; made you feel kind of good.
Though it could be rather a nuisance sometimes. Because they got to feel they had some claim
on you; they figured they had a right to tell you things and interfere. Pete didn't do that in so many words; but he
had a way of looking at you - like a dog would do if it suddenly started
criticizing you for taking another cocktail.
Saying it with eyes, like Hedy Lamarr - only it wasn't the same thing as
Hedy was saying with her eyes; in fact, just the opposite. It was just the opposite now - and what had
she done? Got bored with that silly old
war and listened in to what Sig was saying to Mary Lou. Well, all she could say was that she wasn't
going to have anyone interfering with the way she chose to live her own
life. That was her business. Why, he was almost as bad, the way he looked
at her, as Uncle Jo, or her mother, or Father O'Reilly. Only, of course, they didn't just look; they
said things. Not that he meant badly, of
course, poor Pete; he was just a kid, just unsophisticated and, on top of
everything, in love the way a kid is - like the high-school boy in Deanna
Durbin's last picture. Poor Pete, she
thought again. It was tough luck on him;
but the fact was she never had been attracted by that big, fair, Cary Grant
sort of boy. They just didn't appeal to
her; that was all there was to it. She
liked him; and she enjoyed his being in love with her. But that was all.
Across
the corner of the table she caught his eye, gave him a dazzling smile and
invited him, if he had half an hour to spare after lunch, to come and teach her
and the girls how to pitch horseshoes.
CHAPTER SEVEN
The meal was over at last; the party broke up. Dr Mulge had an appointment in Pasadena to
see a rubber-goods manufacturer's widow, who might perhaps give thirty thousand
dollars for a new girls' dormitory. Mr
Stoyte drove into Los Angeles for his regular Friday afternoon board meetings
and business consultations. Dr Obispo
was going to operate on some rabbits and went down to the laboratory to prepare
his instruments. Pete had a batch of
scientific journals to look at, but gave himself, meanwhile, a few minutes of
happiness in Virginia's company. And for
Jeremy, of course, there were the Hauberk Papers. It was with a sense of almost physical
relief, a feeling that he was going home to where he belonged, that he returned
to his cellar. The afternoon slipped
past - how delightfully, how profitably!
Within three hours, another batch of letters from Molinos had turned up
among the account books and the business correspondence. So had the third and fourth volumes of Félicia. So had an illustrated edition of Le
Portier des Carmes; and bound like a prayer-book, so had a copy of that
rarest of all works of the Divine Marquis, Les Cent-Vingt Jours de Sodome. What a treasure! What unexpected fortune! Or perhaps, Jeremy reflected, not so
unexpected if one remembered the history of the Hauberk family. For the date of the books made it likely that
they had been the property of the Fifth Earl - the one who had held the title
for more than half a century and died at more than ninety, under William IV,
completely unregenerate. Given the
character of that old gentleman, one had no reason to feel surprised at the
finding of a store of pornography - one had every reason, indeed, to hope for
more.
Jeremy's
spirits mounted with each new discovery.
Always, with him, a sure sign of happiness, he began to hum the tunes
that had been popular during his childhood.
Molinos evoked 'Tara-rara Boom-de-ay!'
Félicia and the Portier des Carmes shared the romantic
lilt of 'The Honeysuckle and the Bee.'
As for the Cent-Vingt Jours, which he had never previously read
or even seen a copy of - the finding of that delighted him so much that when,
as a matter of bibliographical routine, he raised the ecclesiastical cover and,
expecting the Anglican ritual, found instead the coldly elegant prose of the
Marquis de Sade, he broke out into the rhyme from 'The Rose and the Ring,' the
rhyme his mother had taught him to repeat when he was only three years old and
which had remained with him as the symbol of childlike wonder and delight, as
the only completely adequate reaction to any sudden blessing, any
providentially happy surprise.
Oh,
what fun to have a plum bun!
How
I wish I never was done!
And fortunately it wasn't done, wasn't even begun; the
book was still unread, the house of entertainment and instruction still lay
before him. Remembering that pang of
jealousy he had felt up there, in the swimming-pool, he smiled
indulgently. Let Mr Stoyte have all the
girls he wanted; a well-written piece of eighteenth-century pornography was
better than any Maunciple. He closed the
volume he was holding. The tooled
morocco was austerely elegant; on the back, the words 'The Book of Common
Prayer' were stamped in a gold which the years had hardly tarnished. He put it down with the other curiosa
on a corner of the table. When he had
finished for the afternoon, he would take the whole collection up to his
bedroom.
'Oh, what
fun to have a plum bun!' he chanted to himself, as he opened another bundle of papers,
and then, 'On a summer's afternoon, where the honeysuckles bloom and all Nature
seems at rest.' That Wordsworthian touch
about Nature always gave him a special pleasure. The new batch of papers turned out to be a
correspondence between the Fifth Earl and a number of prominent Whigs regarding
the enclosure, for his benefit, of three thousand acres of common land in
Nottinghamshire. Jeremy slipped them
into a file, wrote a brief preliminary description of the contents on a card,
put the file in a cupboard and the card in its cabinet, and, dipping again into
the bran pie, reached down for another bundle.
He cut the string. 'You are my
honey, honey, honeysuckle. I am the
bee!' What would Dr Freud have thought
of that, he wondered? Anonymous pamphlets
against deism were a bore; he threw them aside.
But here was a copy of Law's Serious Call with manuscript notes
by Edward Gibbon; and here were some accounts rendered to the Fifth Earl by Mr
Rogers of Liverpool: accounts of the expenses and profits of three
slave-trading expeditions which the Earl had helped finance. The second voyage, it appeared, had been
particularly auspicious; less than a fifth of the cargo had perished on the
way, and the prices realized at Savannah were gratifyingly high. Mr Rogers begged to enclose his draft for
seventeen thousand two hundred and twenty-four pounds eleven shillings and
fourpence. Written from Venice, in
Italian, another letter announced to the same Fifth Earl the appearance upon
the market of a half-length 'Mary Magdalen' by Titian, at a price which the
Italian correspondent described as derisory.
Other offers had already been made; but out of respect for the not less
learned than illustrious English cognoscente, the vendor would wait
until a reply had been received from his lordship. In spite of which, his lordship would be well
advised not to delay too long; for otherwise ...
It was
five o'clock; the sun was low in the sky.
Dressed in white shoes and socks, white shorts, a yachting-cap and a
pink silk sweater, Virginia had come to see the feeding of the baboons.
Its
engine turned off, her rose-coloured motor-scooter stood parked at the side of
the road thirty or forty feet above the cage.
In company with Dr Obispo and Pete, she had gone down to have a closer
look at the animals.
Just
opposite the point at which they were standing, on a shelf of artificial rock,
sat a baboon mother, holding in her arms the withered and disintegrating corpse
of the baby she would not abandon even though it had been dead for a
fortnight. Every now and then, with an
intense, automatic affection, she would lick the little cadaver. Tufts of greenish fur and even pieces of skin
detached themselves under the vigorous action of her tongue. Delicately, with black fingers, she would
pick the hairs out of her mouth, then begin again. Above her, at the mouth of a little cave, two
young males suddenly got into a fight.
The air was filled with screams and barks and the gnashing of
teeth. Then one of the two combatants
ran away and, in a moment, the other had forgotten all about the fight and was
searching for pieces of dandruff on his chest.
To the right, on another shelf of rock, a formidable old male,
leather-snouted, with the grey bobbed hair of a seventeenth-century Anglican divine,
stood guard over his submissive female.
It was a vigilant watch; for if she ventured to move without his leave,
he turned and bit her; and meanwhile the small black eyes, the staring nostrils
at the end of the truncated snout, kept glancing this way and that with an
unsleeping suspicion. From the basket he
was carrying, Pete threw a potato in his direction, then a carrot and another
potato. With a vivid flash of magenta
buttocks the old baboon darted down from his perch on the artificial mountain,
seized the carrot and, while he was eating it, stuffed one potato into his left
cheek, the other into the right; then, still biting at the carrot, advanced
towards the wire and looked up for more.
The coast was clear. The young
male who had been looking for dandruff suddenly saw his opportunity. Chattering with excitement, he bounded down
to the shelf on which, too frightened to follow her master, the little female
was still squatting. Within ten seconds
they had begun to copulate.
Virginia
clapped her hands with pleasure. 'Aren't
they cute!' she cried. 'Aren't they human!'
Another
burst of screaming and barking almost drowned her words.
Pete
interrupted his distribution of food to say that it was a long while since he
had seen Mr Propter. Why shouldn't they
all go down the hill and pay a call on him.
'From the
monkey cage to the Propter paddock,' said Dr Obispo, 'and from the Propter
paddock back to the Stoyte house and the Maunciple kennel. What do you say, angel?'
Virginia
was throwing potatoes to the old male - throwing them in such a way as to
induce him to turn, to retrace his steps towards the shelf on which he had left
his female. Her hope was that, if she
got him to go back far enough, he'd see how the girlfriend passed the time when
he was away. 'Yes, let's go and see old
Proppy,' she said, without turning round.
She tossed another potato into the enclosure. With a flutter of grey bobbed hair the baboon
pounced on it; but instead of looking up and catching Mrs B. having her romance
with the ice-man, the exasperating animal immediately turned round towards the
wire, asking for more. 'Stupid old
fool!' Virginia shouted, and this time threw the potato straight at him. It caught him on the nose. She laughed and turned towards the others. 'I like old Proppy,' she said. 'He scares me a bit; but I like him.'
'All
right then,' said Dr Obispo, 'let's go and rout out Mr Pordage while we're
about it.'
'Yes,
let's go and fetch old Ivory,' Virginia agreed, patting her own auburn curls in
reference to Jeremy's baldness. 'He's
kind of cute, don't you think?'
Leaving
Pete to go on with the feeding of the baboons, they climbed back to the road
and up a flight of steps on the further side, leading directly to the rock-cut
windows of Jeremy's room. Virginia
pushed open the glass door.
'Ivory,'
she called, 'we've come to disturb you.'
Jeremy
began to murmur something humorously gallant; then broke off in the middle of a
sentence. He had suddenly remembered
that pile of curious literature on the corner of the table. To get up and put the books into a cupboard
would be to invite attention to them; he had no newspaper with which to cover
them, no other books to mix them up with.
There was nothing to be done.
Nothing, except to hope for the best.
Fervently he hoped for it; and almost immediately the worst
happened. Idly, out of the need to
perform some muscular action, however pointless, Virginia picked up a volume of
Nerciat, opened it at one of its conscientiously detailed engravings, looked,
then with wider eyes looked again and let out a whoop of startled
excitement. Dr Obispo glanced and yelled
in turn; then both broke out into enormous laughter.
Jeremy
sat in a misery of embarrassment, sickly smiling, while they asked him if that
was how he spent his time, if this was the sort of thing he was
studying. If only people weren't so
wearisome, he was thinking, so deplorably unsubtle!
Virginia
turned over the pages until she found another illustration. Once more there was an outcry of delight,
astonishment and, this time, incredulity.
Was it possible? Could it really
be done? She spelled out the caption
under the engraving: 'La vulupté frappait à toutes les portes'; then
petulantly shook her head. It was no
good; she couldn't understand it. Those
French lessons at High School - just lousy; that was all you could say about
them. They hadn't taught her anything
except a lot of nonsense about le crayon de mon oncle and savez-vous
planter les chou. She'd always said
that studying was mostly a waste of time; this proved it. And why did they have to print this stuff in
French anyhow? At the thought that the
deficiencies in the educational system of the State of Oregon might for ever
prevent her from reading André de Nerciat, the tears came into Virginia's
eyes. It was really too bad!
A
brilliant idea occurred to Jeremy. Why
shouldn't he offer to translate the book for her - viva voce and
sentence by sentence, like an interpreter at a Council Meeting of the League of
Nations? Yes, why not? The more he thought of it, the better the
idea the idea seemed to him to be. His
decision was made and he had begun to consider how most felicitously to phrase
his offer, when Dr Obispo quietly took the volume Virginia was holding, picked
up the three companion volumes from the table, along with Le Portier des
Carmes and the Cent-Vingt Jours de Sodome, and slipped the entire
collection into the side-pocket of his jacket.
'Don't
worry,' he said to Virginia, 'I'll translate them for you. And now let's go back to the baboons. Pete'll be wondering what's happened to
us. Come on, Mr Pordage.'
In
silence, but boiling inwardly with self-reproach for his own inefficiency and
indignation at the doctor's impudence, Jeremy followed them out of the french
window and down the steps.
Pete had
emptied his basket and was leaning against the wire, intently following with
his eyes the movements of the animals within.
At their approach he turned towards them. His pleasant young face was bright with
excitement.
'Do you
know, doc,' he said, 'I believe it's working.'
'What's
working?' asked Virginia.
Pete's
answering smile was beautiful with happiness.
For, oh, how happy he was! Doubly
and trebly happy. By the sweetness of
her subsequent behaviour, Virginia had more than made up for the pain she had
inflicted by turning away to listen to that smutty story. And after all it probably wasn't a smutty
story; he had been maligning her, thinking gratuitous evil of her. No, it certainly hadn't been a smutty story -
not smutty because, when she turned back to him, her face had looked like the
face of that child in the illustrated Bible at home, that child who was gazing
so innocently and cutely while Jesus said, 'Of such is the Kingdom of Heaven.' And that was not the only reason for his
happiness. He was happy, too, because it
looked as though those cultures of the carp's intestinal flora were really
having an effect on the baboons they had tried them on.
'I
believe they're livelier,' he explained.
'And their fur - it's kind of glossier.'
The fact
gave him almost as great a satisfaction as did Virginia's presence here in the
transfiguring richness of the evening sunlight, as did the memory of her
sweetness, the uplifting conviction of her essential innocence. Indeed, in some obscure way, the rejuvenation
of the baboons and Virginia's adorableness seemed to him to have a profound
connection - a connection not only with one another, but also and at the same
time with Loyalist Spain and anti-fascism.
Three separate things, and yet one thing.... There was a bit of poetry
he had been made to learn at school - how did it go?
I
could not love thee, dear, so much,
Loved
I not something or other (he could
not at
the
moment remember what) more.
He did not love anything more than
Virginia. But the fact that he cared so
enormously much for science and justice, for this research and the boys back in
Spain, did something to make his love for her more profound and, though it
seemed a paradox, more wholehearted.
'Well,
what about moving on?' he suggested at last.
Dr Obispo
looked at his wristwatch. 'I'd
forgotten,' he said. 'I've got some
letters I ought to write before dinner.
Guess I'll have to see Mr Propter some other time.'
'That's
too bad!' Pete did his best to impart to
his tone and expression the cordiality of regret he did not feel. In fact, he was delighted. He admired Dr Obispo, thought him a
remarkable research worker - but not the sort of person a young innocent girl
like Virginia ought to associate with.
He dreaded for her the influence of so much cynicism and
hardboiledness. Besides, so far as his
own relations to Virginia were concerned, Dr Obispo was always in the way. 'That's too bad!' he repeated, and the
intensity of his pleasure was such that he fairly ran up the steps leading from
the baboon-enclosure to the drive - ran so fast that his heart began
palpitating and missing beats. Damn that
rheumatic fever!
Dr Obispo
stepped back to allow Virginia to pass and, as he did so, gave a little tap to
the pocket containing Les Cent-Vingt Jours de Sodome and tipped her a
wink. Virginia winked back and followed
Pete up the steps.
A few
moments later, Dr Obispo was walking up the drive, the others down. Or, to be more exact, Pete and Jeremy were
walking, while Virginia, to whom the idea of using one's legs to get from
anywhere to anywhere else was practically unthinkable, sat on her
strawberry-and-cream coloured scooter and, with one hand affectionately laid on
Pete's shoulders, allowed herself to be carried down by the force of gravity.
The noise
of the baboons faded behind them, and at the next turn of the road there was
Giambologna's nymph, still indefatigably spouting from her polished
breasts. Virginia suddenly interrupted a
conversation about Clark Gable to say, in the righteously indignant tone of a
vice crusader, 'I just can't figure why Uncle Jo allows that thing to stand
there. It's disgusting!'
'Disgusting?'
Jeremy echoed in astonishment.
'Disgusting!'
she repeated emphatically.
` 'Do you
object to her not having any clothes on?' he asked, remembering, as he did so,
those two little satin asumptotes to nudity which she herself had worn up
there, in the swimming-pool.
She shook
her head impatiently. 'It's the way the
water comes out.' She made a grimace of
one who had tasted something revolting.
'I think it's horrible.'
'But
why?' Jeremy insisted.
'Because
it's horrible,' was all the explanation she could give. A child of her age, which was the age, in
this context, of bottle-feeding and contraception, she felt herself outraged by this monstrous
piece of indelicacy from an earlier time.
It was just horrible; that was all that could be said about it. Turning back to Pete, she went on talking
about Clark Gable.
Opposite
the entrance to the Grotto, Virginia parked her scooter. The masons had finished their work on the
tomb and were gone; the place was empty.
Virginia straightened her rakishly tilted yachting-cap as a sign of
respect; then ran up the steps, paused on the threshold to cross herself and,
entering, knelt for a few moments before the image. The others waited silently, in the roadway.
'Our Lady
was so wonderful to me when I had sinus trouble last summer,' Virginia
explained to Jeremy when she emerged again.
'That's why I got Uncle Jo to make this grotto for her. Wasn't it gorgeous when the Archbishop came
for the consecration?' she added, turning to Pete.
Pete
nodded affirmatively.
'I
haven't even had a cold since She's been here,' Virginia went on, as she took
her seat on the scooter. Her face fairly
shone with triumph; every victory for the Queen of Heaven was also a personal
success for Virginia Maunciple. Then
abruptly and without warning, as though she were doing a screen test and had
received the order to register fatigue and self-pity, she passed a hand across
her forehead, sighed profoundly and, in a tone of utter dejection and
discouragement, said, 'All the same, I'm feeling pretty tired this
evening. Guess I was in the sun too much
right after lunch. Maybe I'd better go
and lie down a bit.' And affectionately
but very firmly rejecting Pete's offer to go back with her to the castle, she
wheeled her scooter round, so that it faced up-hill, gave the young man a last,
particularly charming, almost amorous smile and look, said, 'Goodbye, Pete
darling,' and, opening the throttle of the engine, shot off with gathering
momentum and an accelerating roll of explosions up the steep curving road, out
of sight. Five minutes later she was in
her boudoir, fixing a chocolate-and-banana split at the soda-fountain. Seated in a gilded armchair upholstered in
satin couleur fesse de nymphe, Dr Obispo was reading aloud and
translating as he went along from the first volume of Les Cent-Vingt Jours.
CHAPTER EIGHT
Mr Propter was sitting on a bench under the largest of
his eucalyptus trees. To the west the
mountains were already a flat silhouette against the evening sky, but in front
of him, to the north, the upper slopes were still alive with light and shadow,
with rosy gold and depths of indigo. In
the foreground, the castle had put on a garment of utterly improbable splendour
and romance. Mr Propter looked at it and
at the hills and up through the motionless leaves of the eucalyptus at the pale
sky; then closed his eyes and noiselessly repeated Cardinal Bérulle's answer to
the question: 'What is man?' It was more
than thirty years before, when he was writing his study of the Cardinal, that
he had first read those words. They had
impressed him even then by the splendour and precision of their eloquence. With the lapse of time and the growth of his
experience they had come to seem more than eloquent, had come to take on ever
richer connotations, ever profounder significance. 'What is man?' he whispered to himself. 'C'est en néant environné de Dieu,
indigent de Dieu, capable de Dieu, et rempli de Dieu, s'il veut.' A nothingness surrounded by God, indigent
and capable of God, filled with God, if he so desires.' And what is this God of which men are
capable? Mr Propter answered with the
definition given by John Tauler in the first paragraph of his Following of
Christ: 'God is a being withdrawn from creatures, a free power, a pure
working.' Man, then, is as nothingness
surrounded by, and indigent of, a being withdrawn from creatures, a nothingness
capable of free power, filled with a pure working if he so desires. If he so desires, Mr Propter was
distracted into reflecting with a sudden, rather bitter sadness. But how few men ever do desire or, desiring,
ever know what to wish for or how to get it!
Right knowledge is hardly less rare than the sustained good-will to act
on it. Of those few who look for God,
most find, through ignorance, only such reflections of their own self-will as
the God of battles, the God of the chosen people, the Prayer-Answerer, the
Saviour.
Having
deviated thus far into negativity, Mr Propter was led on, through a continuing
failure of vigilance, into an even less profitable preoccupation with the
concrete and particular miseries of the day.
He remembered his interview that morning with Hansen, who was the agent
for Jo Stoyte's estates in the valley.
Hansen's treatment of the migrants who came to pick the fruit was worse
even than the average. He had taken
advantage of their number and their desperate need to force down wages. In the groves he managed, young children were
being made to work all day in the sun at the rate of two or three cents an
hour. And when the day's work was
finished, the homes to which they returned were a row of verminous sties in the
waste land beside the bed of the river.
For these sties, Hansen was charging a rent of ten dollars a month. Ten dollars a month for the privilege of freezing
or suffocating; of sleeping in a filthy promiscuity; of being eaten up by
bedbugs and lice; of picking up ophthalmia and perhaps hookworm and amoebic
dysentery. And yet Hansen was a very
decent, kindly man: one who would be shocked and indignant if he saw you
hurting a dog; one who would fly to the protection of a maltreated woman or a
crying child. When Mr Propter drew this
fact to his attention, Hansen had flushed darkly with anger.
'That's
different,' he had said.
Mr
Propter had tried to find out why it was different.
It was
his duty, Hansen had said.
But how
could it be his duty to treat children worse than slaves and inoculate them
with hookworm?
It was
his duty to the estates. He wasn't doing
anything for himself.
But why
should doing wrong for someone else be different from doing wrong on your own
behalf? The results were exactly the
same in either case. The victims didn't
suffer any less when you were doing what you called your duty than when you
were acting in what you imagined might be your own interests.
This time
the anger had exploded in violent abuse.
It was the anger, Mr Propter had perceived, of the well-meaning but
stupid man who is compelled against his will to ask himself indiscreet
questions about what he has been doing as a matter of course. He doesn't want to ask these questions,
because he knows that if he does he will be forced either to go on with what he
is doing, but with the cynic's awareness that he is doing wrong, or else, if he
doesn't want to be a cynic, to change the entire pattern of his life so as to
bring his desire to do right into harmony with the real facts as revealed in
the course of self-interrogation. To
most people any radical change is even more odious than cynicism. The
only way between the horns of the dilemma is to persist at all costs in
the ignorance which permits one to go on doing wrong in the comforting belief
that by doing so one is accomplishing one's duty - one's duty to the company,
to the shareholders, to the family, the city, the state, the fatherland, the
church. For, of course, poor Hansen's
case wasn't in any way unique; on a smaller scale, and therefore with less
power to do evil, he was acting like all those civil servants and statesmen and
prelates who go through life spreading misery and destruction in the name of
their ideals and under orders from their categorical imperatives.
Well, he
hadn't go very far with Hansen, Mr Propter sadly concluded. He'd have to try again with Jo Stoyte. In the past, Jo had always refused to listen,
on the ground that the estates were Hansen's business. The alibi was so convenient that it would be
hard, he foresaw, to break it down.
From
Hansen and Jo Stoyte his thoughts wandered to that newly arrived family of
transients from Kansas, to whom he had given one of his cabins. The three undernourished children, with the
teeth already rotting in their mouths; the woman, emaciated by God knew what
complication of diseases, deep-sunken already in apathy and weakness; the
husband, alternately resentful and self-pitying, violent and morose.
He had
gone with the man to get some vegetables from the garden plots and a rabbit for
the family supper. Sitting there,
skinning the rabbit, he had had to listen to outbursts of incoherent complaint
and indignation. Complaint and
indignation against the wheat market, which had broken each time he had begun
to do well. Against the banks he had
borrowed money from and been unable to repay.
Against the droughts and winds that had reduced his farm to a hundred and
sixty acres of dust and wilderness.
Against the luck that had always been against him. Against the folks who had treated him so
meanly, everywhere, all his life.
Dismally
familiar story! With inconsiderable
variations, he had heard it a thousand times before. Sometimes they were sharecroppers from
further south, dispossessed by the owners in a desperate effort to make the
farming pay. Sometimes, like this man,
they had owned their own place and been dispossessed, not by financiers, but by
the forces of nature - forces of nature which they themselves had made
destructive by tearing up the grass and planting nothing but wheat. Sometimes they had been hired men, displaced
by the tractors. All of them had come to
California as to a promised land; and California had already reduced them to a
condition of wandering peonage and was fast transforming them into
Untouchables. Only a saint, Mr Propter
reflected, only a saint, could be a peon and a pariah with impunity, because
only a saint would accept the position gladly and as though he had chosen it of
his own free will. Poverty and suffering
ennoble only when they are voluntary. By
involuntary poverty and suffering men are made worse. It is easier for a camel to pass through the
eye of a needle than for an involuntarily poor man to enter the kingdom of
heaven. Here, for example, was this poor
devil from Kansas. How had he reacted to
involuntary poverty and suffering? So
far as Mr Propter could judge, he was compensating himself for his misfortunes
by brutality to those weaker than himself.
The way he yelled at the children ... It was an all too familiar
symptom.
When the
rabbit was skinned and gutted, Mr Propter had interrupted his companion's
monologue.
'Do you
know which is the stupidest text in the Bible?' he had suddenly asked.
Startled,
and evidently a bit shocked, the man from Kansas had shaken his head.
'It's
this,' Mr Propter had said, as he got up and handed him to carcass of the
rabbit. '"They hated me without a
cause."'
Under the
eucalyptus tree, Mr Propter wearily sighed.
Pointing out to unfortunate people that, in part at any rate, they were
pretty certainly responsible for their own misfortunes; explaining to them that
ignorance and stupidity are no less severely punished by the nature of things
than deliberate malice - these were never agreeable tasks. Never agreeable, but, so far as he could see,
always necessary. For what hope, he
asked himself, what faintest glimmer of hope is there for a man who really
believes that 'they hated me without a cause' and that he had no part in his
own disasters? Obviously, no hope
whatever. We see, as a matter of brute
fact, that disasters and hatreds are never without causes; we also see that
some at least of those causes are generally under the control of the people who
suffer the disasters or are the object of the hatred. In some measure they are directly or
indirectly responsible. Directly, by the
commission of stupid or malicious acts.
Indirectly, by the omission to be as intelligent and compassionate as
they might be. And if they make this
omission, it is generally because they choose to conform unthinkingly to local
standards, and the current way of living.
Mr Propter's thoughts returned to the poor fellow from Kansas. Self-righteous, no doubt disagreeable to the
neighbours, an incompetent farmer; but that wasn't the whole story. His gravest offence had been to accept the
world in which he found himself as normal, rational and right. Like all the others, he had allowed the
advertisers to multiply his wants; he had learned to equate happiness with
possessions, and prosperity with money to spend in a shop. Like all the others, he had abandoned any
idea of subsistence farming to think exclusively in terms of a cash crop; and
he had gone on thinking in those terms, even when the crop no longer gave him
any cash. Then, like all the others, he
had got into debt with the banks. And
finally, like all the others, he had learned that what the experts had been
saying for a generation was perfectly true: in a semi-arid country it is grass
that holds down the soil; tear up the grass, the soil will go. In due course, it had gone.
The man
from Kansas was now a peon and a pariah; and the experience was making a worse
man of him.
St Peter
Claver was another of the historical personages to whom Mr Propter had devoted
a study. When the slave-ships came into
the harbour of Cartagena, Peter Claver was the only white man to venture down
into the holds. There, in the
unspeakable stench and heat, in the vapours of pus and excrement, he tended the
sick, he dressed the ulcers of those whom their manacles had wounded, he held
in his arms the men who had given way to despair and spoke to them words of
comfort and affection - and in the intervals talked to them about their
sins. Their sins! The modern humanitarian would laugh, if he were
not shocked. And yet - such was the
conclusion to which Mr Propter had gradually and reluctantly come - and yet St
Peter Claver was probably right. Not
completely right, of course; for, acting on wrong knowledge, no man, however
well-intentioned, can be more than partially right. But as nearly right, at any rate, as a good
man with a counter-Reformation Catholic philosophy could expect to be. Right in insisting that, whatever the
circumstances in which he finds himself, a human being always has omissions to
make good, commissions whose effects must, if possible, be neutralized. Right in believing that it is well even for
the most brutally sinned against to be reminded of their own shortcomings.
Peter
Claver's conception of the world had the defect of being erroneous, but the
merit of being simple and dramatic.
Given a personal God, dispenser of forgiveness, given heaven and hell
and the absolute reality of human personalities, given the meritoriousness of
mere good intentions and of unquestioning faith in a set of incorrect opinions,
given the one true church, the efficacy of priestly mediation, the magic of
sacraments - given all these, it was really quite easy to convince even a newly
imported slave of his sinfulness and to explain exactly what he ought to do
about it. But if there is no single
inspired book, no uniquely holy church, no mediating priesthood nor sacramental
magic, if there is no personal God to be placated into forgiving offences, if
there are, even in the moral world, only causes and effects and the enormous
complexity of interrelationships - then, clearly, the task of telling people
what to do about their shortcomings is much more difficult. For every individual is called upon to
display not only unsleeping good-will but also unsleeping intelligence. And this is not all. For, if individuality is not absolute, if
personalities are illusory figments of a self-will disastrously blind to the
reality of a more-than-personal consciousness, of which it is the limitation
and denial, then all of every human being's efforts must be directed, in the
last resort, to the actualization of that more-than-personal
consciousness. So that even intelligence
is not sufficient as an adjunct to good-will; there must also be the
recollection which seeks to transcend and transform intelligence. Many are called, but few are chosen - because
few even know in what salvation consists.
Consider again this man from Kansas.... Mr Propter sadly shook his
head. Everything was against the poor
fellow - his fundamentalist orthodoxy, his wounded and inflamed egotism, his
nervous irritability, his low intelligence.
The first three disadvantages might perhaps be removed. But could anything be done about the
fourth? The nature of things is
implacable towards weakness. 'From him
that hath not shall be taken away even that which he hath.' And what were those words of Spinoza's? 'A man may be excusable and nevertheless be
tormented in many ways. A horse is
excusable for not being a man; but nevertheless he must needs be a horse, and
not a man.' All the same, there must
surely be something to be done for people like the man from Kansas - something
that didn't entail telling harmful untruths about the nature of things. The untruth, for example, that there is a person
up aloft, or the other more modern untruth to the effect that human values are
absolute and that God is the nation or the party or the human race as a
whole. Surely, Mr Propter insisted,
surely there was something to be done for such people. The man from Kansas had begun by resenting
what he had said about the chain of cause and effect, the network of
relationships - resenting it as a personal insult. But afterwards, when he saw that he was not
being blamed, that no attempt was being made to come it over him, he had begun
to take an interest, to see that after all there was something in it. Little by little it might be possible to make
him think a bit more realistically, at least about the world of everyday life,
the outside world of appearances. And
when he had done that, then it mightn't be so overwhelmingly difficult for him
to think a bit more realistically about himself - to conceive of that
all-important ego of his as a fiction, a kind of nightmare, a frantically
agitated nothingness capable, when once its frenzy had been quieted, of being
filled with God, with a God conceived and experienced as a more than personal
consciousness, as a free power, a pure working, a being withdrawn.... Suddenly,
as he thus returned to his starting-point, Mr Propter became aware of the long,
circuitous, unprofitable way he had travelled in order to reach it. He had come to this bench under the
eucalyptus tree in order to recollect himself, in order to realize for a moment
the existence of that other consciousness behind his private thoughts and
feelings, that free, pure power greater than his own. He had come for this; but memories had
slipped in while he was off his guard; speculations had started up, cloud upon
cloud, like seabirds rising from their nesting-place to darken and eclipse the
sun. Bondage is the life of personality,
and for bondage the personal self will fight with tireless resourcefulness and
the most stubborn cunning. The price of
freedom is eternal vigilance; and he had failed to be vigilant. It wasn't a case, he reflected ruefully, of
the spirit being willing and the flesh weak.
That was altogether the wrong antithesis. The spirit is always willing; but the person,
who is a mind as well as a body, is always unwilling - and the person, incidentally,
is not weak but extremely strong.
He looked
again at the mountains, at the pale sky between the leaves, at the soft russet
pinks and purples and greys of the eucalyptus trunks; then shut his eyes once
more.
'A nothingness
surrounded by God, indigent of God, capable of God and filled with God if man
so desires. And what is God? A being withdrawn from creatures, a free
power, a pure working.' His vigilance
gradually ceased to be an act of the will, a deliberate thrusting back of
irrelevant personal thoughts and wishes and feelings. For little by little these thoughts and
wishes and feelings had settled like a muddy sediment in a jar of water, and as
they settled, his vigilance was free to transform itself into a kind of
effortless unattached awareness, at once intense and still, alert and passive -
an awareness whose object was the words he had spoken and at the same time that
which surrounded the words. But that
which surrounded the words was the awareness itself; for this vigilance which
was now an effortless awareness - what was it but an aspect, a partial
expression, of that impersonal and untroubled consciousness into which the
words had been dropped and through which they were slowly sinking? And as they sank they took a new significance
for the awareness that was following them down into the depths of itself - a
significance new not in respect to the entities connoted by the words, but
rather in the mode of their comprehension, which, from being intellectual in
character, had become intuitive and direct, so that the nature of man in his
potentiality and of God in actuality were realized by an analogue of sensuous
experience, by a kind of unmediated participation.
The busy
nothingness of his being experienced itself as transcended in the felt capacity
for peace and purity, for the withdrawal from revulsion and desires, for the
blissful freedom from personality....
The sound
of approaching footsteps made him open his eyes. Peter Boone and that Englishman he had sat
with in the car were advancing up the path towards his seat under the
eucalyptus trees. Mr Propter raised his
hand in welcome and smiled. He was fond
of young Pete. There was native
intelligence there and native kindliness; there was sensitiveness, generosity,
a spontaneous decency of impulse and reaction.
Charming and beautiful qualities!
The pity was that by themselves, and undirected as they were by a right
knowledge of the nature of things, they should be so impotent for good, so
inadequate to anything a reasonable man could call salvation. Fine gold, but still in the ore, unsmelted,
unworked. Some day, perhaps, the boy
would learn to use his gold. He would
have to wish to learn first - and wish also to unlearn a lot of the things he
now regarded as self-evident and right.
It would be hard for him - as hard, but for other reasons, as it would
be for that poor fellow from Kansas.
'Well,
Pete,' he called, 'come and sit with me here.
And you've brought Mr Pordage; that's good.' He moved to the middle of the bench so that
they could sit, one on either side of him.
'And did you meet the Ogre?' he said to Jeremy, pointing in the
direction of the castle.
Jeremy
made a grimace and nodded. 'I remembered
the name you used to call him at school,' he said. 'That made it a little easier.'
'Poor
Jo,' said Mr Propter. 'Fat people are
always supposed to be us happy. But who
ever enjoyed being laughed at? That
jolly manner they sometimes have, and the jokes they make at their own expense
- it's just a case of alibis and prophylactics.
They vaccinate themselves with
their own ridicule so that they shan't react too violently to other
people's.'
Jeremy
smiled. He knew all about that. 'It's a good way out of an unpleasant
predicament,' he said.
Mr
Propter nodded. 'But unfortunately,' he
said, 'it didn't happen to be Jo's way.
Jo was the kind of a fat boy who bluffs it out. The kind that fights. The kind that bullies or patronizes. The kind that boasts and shows off. The kind that buys popularity by treating the
girls to ice-creams, even if he has to steal a dime from his grandmother's
purse to do it. The kind that goes on
stealing even if he's found out and gets beaten and believes it when they tell
him he'll go to hell. Poor Jo, he's been
that sort of fat boy all his life.' He
pointed once again in the direction of the castle. 'That's his monument to a faulty
pituitary. And talking of pituitaries,'
he went on, turning to Pete, 'how's the work been going?'
Pete had
been thinking gloomily of Virginia - wondering for the hundredth time why she
had left them, whether he had done anything to offend her, whether she was
really tired or if there might be some other reason. At Mr Propter's mention of work he looked up,
and his face brightened. 'It's going
just fine,' he answered, and, in quick, eager phrases, strangely compounded of
slang and technical terms, he told Mr Propter about the results they had
already got with their mice and were beginning to get, so it seemed, with the
baboons and the dogs.
'And if
you succeed,' Mr Propter asked, 'what happens to your dogs?'
'Why,
their life's prolonged,' Pete answered triumphantly.
'Yes,
yes, I know that,' said the older man.
'What I meant to ask was something different. A dog's a wolf that hasn't fully
developed. It's more like the foetus of
a wolf than an adult wolf; isn't that so.'
Peter
nodded.
'In other
words,' Mr Propter went on, 'it's a mild, tractable animal because it has never
grown up into savagery. Isn't that
supposed to be one of the mechanisms of evolutionary development?'
Pete
nodded again. 'There's a kind of
glandular equilibrium,' he explained.
'Then a mutation comes along and knocks it sideways. You get a new equilibrium that happens to
retard the development rate. You grow
up; but you do it so slowly that you're dead before you've stopped being like
you great-great-grandfather's foetus.'
'Exactly,'
said Mr Propter. 'So what happens if you
prolong the life of an animal that has evolved that way?'
Pete
laughed and shrugged his shoulders.
'Guess we'll have to wait and see,' he said.
'It would
be a bit disquieting,' said Mr Propter, 'if your dogs grew back in the process
of growing up.'
Pete
laughed again delightedly. 'Think of the
dowagers being chased by their own Pekinese,' he said.
Mr
Propter looked at him curiously and was silent for a moment, as though waiting
to see whether Pete would make any further comment. The comment did not come. 'I'm glad you feel so happy about it,' he
said. Then, turning to Jeremy, '"It
is not," if I remember rightly, Mr Pordage,' he went on, '"It is not
growing like a tree in bulk doth make men better be."'
'"Or
standing long an oak, three hundred years,"' said Jeremy, smiling with the
pleasure which an apt quotation always gave him.
'What
shall we all be doing at three hundred?' Mr Propter speculated. 'Do you suppose you'd still be a scholar and
a gentleman?'
Jeremy
coughed and patted his bald head. 'One
will certainly have stopped being a gentleman,' he answered. 'One's begun to stop even now, thank heaven.'
'But the
scholar will stay the course?'
'There's
a lot of books in the British Museum.'
'And you,
Pete?' said Mr Propter. 'Do you suppose
you'll still be doing scientific research?'
'Why
not? What's to prevent you from going on
with it for ever?' the young man answered emphatically.
'For
ever?' Mr Propter repeated. 'You don't
think you'd get a bit bored? One
experiment after another. Or one book
after another,' he added in an aside to Jeremy.
'In general, one damned thing after another. You don't think that would prey on your mind
a bit?'
'I don't
see why,' said Pete.
'Time
doesn't bother you, then?'
Pete
shook his head. 'Why should it?'
'Why
should it?' said Mr Propter, smiling at him with an amused affection. 'Time's a pretty bothersome thing, you know.'
'Not if
you aren't scared of dying or growing old.'
'Yes, it
is,' Mr Propter insisted; 'even if you're not scared. It's nightmarish in itself - intrinsically
nightmarish, if you see what I mean.'
'Intrinsically?'
Pete looked at him perplexed. 'I don't
get it,' he said. 'Intrinsically
nightmarish ...?'
'Nightmarish
in the present tense, of course,' Jeremy put in. 'But if one takes it in the fossil state - in
the form of the Hauberk Papers, for example ...' He left the sentence
unfinished.
'Oh,
pleasant enough,' said Mr Propter, agreeing with his implied conclusion. 'But, after all, history isn't the real
thing. Past time is only evil at a
distance; and, of course, the study of past time is itself a process in
time. Cataloguing bits of fossil evil
can never be more than an Ersatz for the experience of eternity.' He glanced curiously at Pete, wondering how
the boy would respond to what he was saying.
Plunging like this into the heart of the matter, beginning at the very
core and centre of the mystery - it was risky; there was a danger of evoking
nothing but bewilderment, or alternatively nothing but angry derision. Pete's, he could see, was more nearly the
first reaction; but it was a bewilderment that seemed to be tempered by
interest; he looked as though he wanted to find out what it was all about.
Meanwhile,
Jeremy had begun to feel that this conversation was taking a most undesirable
turn. 'What precisely are we supposed to
be talking about?' he asked acidulously.
'The New Jerusalem?'
Mr
Propter smiled at him good-humouredly.
'It's all right,' he said, 'I won't say a word about harps or wings.'
'Well,
that's something,' said Jeremy.
'I never
could get much satisfaction out of meaningless discourse,' Mr Propter
continued. 'I like the words I use to
bear some relation to facts. That's why
I'm interested in eternity - psychological eternity. Because it's a fact.'
'For you,
perhaps,' said Jeremy in a tone which implied that more civilized people didn't
suffer from these hallucinations.
'For
anyone who chooses to fulfil the conditions under which it can be experienced.'
'And why
should anyone choose to fulfil them?'
'Why
should anyone choose to go to Athens to see the Parthenon? Because it's worth the bother. And the same is true of eternity. The experience of timeless good is worth all
the trouble it involved.'
'"Timeless
good,"' Jeremy repeated with distaste.
'I don't know what the words mean.'
'Why
should you?' said Mr Propter. 'One
doesn't know the full meaning of the word "Parthenon" until one has
actually seen the thing.'
'Yes, but
at least I've seen photographs of the Parthenon; I've read descriptions.'
'You've
read descriptions of timeless good,' Mr Propter answered. 'Dozens of them. In all the literatures of philosophy and
religion. You've read them; but you've
never bought your ticket for Athens.'
In a
resentful silence, Jeremy had to admit to himself that this was true. The fact that it was true made him disapprove
of the conversation even more profoundly than he had done before.
'As for
time,' Mr Propter was saying to Pete, 'what is it, in this particular context,
but the medium in which evil propagates itself, the element in which evil lives
and outside of which it dies? Indeed,
it's more than the element of evil, more than merely its medium. If you carry your analysis far enough, you'll
find that time is evil. One of the
aspects of its essential substance.'
Jeremy
listened with growing discomfort and a mounting irritation. His fears had been justified; the old boy was
launching out into the worst kind of theology.
Eternity, timeless experience of good, time as the substance of evil -
it was bad enough, God knew, in books; but, fired at you like this,
point-blank, by somebody who really took it seriously, why, it was really
frightful. Why on earth couldn't people
live their lives in a rational, civilized way?
Why couldn't they take things as they came? Breakfast at nine, lunch at one-thirty, tea
at five. And conversation. And the daily walk with Mr Gladstone, the
Yorkshire terrier. And the library; the
Works of Voltaire in eighty-three volumes; the inexhaustible treasure of Horace
Walpole; and for a change the Divine Comedy; and then, in case you might
be tempted to take the Middle Ages too seriously, Salimbene's autobiography and
the Miller's Tale. And sometimes calls
in the afternoon - the Rector, Lady Fredegond with her ear-trumpet, Mr Veal. And political discussions - except that in these
last months, since the Anchluss and Munich, one had found that political
discussion was one of the unpleasant things it was wise to avoid. And the weekly journey to London, with lunch
at the Reform, and always dinner with old Thripp of the British Museum; and a
chat with one's poor brother Tom at the Foreign Office (only that too was
rapidly becoming one of the things to be avoided). And then, of course, the London Library; and
Vespers at Westminster Cathedral, if they happened to be singing Palestrina;
and every alternate week, between five and six-thirty, an hour and a half with
Mae or Doris in their flat in Maida Vale.
Infinite squalor in a little room, as he liked to call it; abysmally
delightful. Those were the things that
came; why couldn't they take them, quietly and sensibly? But no, they had to gibber about eternity and
all the rest. That sort of stuff always
made Jeremy want to be blasphemous - to ask whether God had a boyau rectum, to
protest, like the Japanese in the anecdote, that he was altogether flummoxed
and perplexed by position of Honourable Bird.
But, unfortunately, the present was one of those peculiarly exasperating
cases where such reactions were out of place.
For, after all, old Propter had written Short Studies; what he
said couldn't just be dismissed as the vapourings of a deficient mind. Besides, he hadn't talked Christianity, so
that jokes about anthropomorphism were beside the point. It was really too exasperating! He assumed an expression of haughty detachment
and even started to hum 'The Honeysuckle and the Bee.' The impression he wanted to give was that of
a superior being who really couldn't be expected to waste his time listening to
stuff like this.
A comic spectacle,
Mr Propter reflected as he looked at him; except, of course, that it was so
extremely depressing.
CHAPTER NINE
'Time and craving,' said Mr Propter, 'craving and time
- two aspects of the same thing; and that thing is the raw material of evil. So you see, Pete,' he added in another tone,
'you see what a queer sort of present you'll be making us, if you're successful
in your work. Another century or so of
time and craving. A couple of extra
lifetimes of potential evil.'
'And potential good,' the young man insisted with a
note of protest in his voice.
'And potential
good,' Mr Propter agreed. 'But only at a
far remove from that extra time you're giving us.'
'Why do
you say that?' Pete asked.
'Because
potential evil is in time; potential good isn't. The longer you live, the more evil you
automatically come into contact with.
Nobody comes automatically into contact with good. Men don't find more good by merely existing
longer. It's curious,' he went on
reflectively, 'that people should always have concentrated on the problem of
evil. Exclusively. As though the nature of good were something
self-evident. But it isn't self-evident. There's a problem of good at least as
difficult as the problem of evil.'
'And
what's the solution?' Pete asked.
'The
solution is very simple and profoundly unacceptable. Actual good is outside time.'
'Outside
time? But then how ...?'
'I told
you it was unacceptable,' said Mr Propter.
'But if
it's outside time, then ...'
'... then
nothing within time can be actual good.
Time is potential evil, and craving converts the potentiality into
actual evil. Whereas a temporal act can
never be more than potentially good, with a potentiality, what's more, that
can't be actualized except out of time.'
'But
inside time, here - you know, just doing the ordinary things - hell! we do
sometimes do right. What acts are good?'
'Strictly
speaking, none,' Mr Propter answered.
'But, in practice, I think one's justified in applying the word to
certain acts. Any act that contributes
towards the liberation of those concerned in it - I'd call it a good act.'
'Liberation?'
the young man repeated dubiously. The
words, in his mind, carried only economic and revolutionary connotations. But it was evident that Mr Propter wasn't talking
about the necessity for getting rid of capitalism. 'Liberation from what?'
Mr
Propter hesitated before replying.
Should he go on with this? he wondered.
The Englishman was hostile; the time short; the boy himself entirely
ignorant. But it was an ignorance
evidently mitigated by good-will and a touching nostalgia for perfection. He decided to take a chance and go on.'
'Liberation
from time,' he said. 'Liberation from
craving and revulsions. Liberation from
personality.'
'But
heck,' said Pete, 'you're always talking about democracy. Doesn't that mean respecting personality?'
'Of
course,' Mr Propter agreed. 'Respecting
it in order that it may be able to transcend itself. Slavery and fanaticism intensify the
obsession with time and evil and the self.
Hence the value of democratic institutions and a sceptical attitude of
mind. The more you respect a
personality, the better its chance of discovering that all personality is a
prison. Potential good is anything that
helps you to get out of prison.
Actualized good lies outside the prison, in timelessness, in the state
of pure, disinterested consciousness.'
'I'm not
much good at abstractions,' said the young man.
'Let's take some concrete examples.
What about science, for instance?
Is that good?'
'Good,
bad and indifferent, according to how it's pursued and what it's used for. Good, bad and indifferent, first of all, for
the scientists themselves - just as art and scholarship may be good, bad or
indifferent for artists and scholars.
Good if it facilitates liberation; indifferent if it neither helps nor
hinders; bad if it makes liberation more difficult by intensifying the
obsession with personality. And,
remember, the apparent selflessness of the scientist, or the artist, is not
necessarily a genuine freedom from the bondage of personality. Scientists and artists are men devoted to
what we vaguely call an ideal. But what
is an ideal? An ideal is merely the
projection, on an enormously enlarged scale, of some aspect of personality.'
'Say that
again,' Pete requested, while even Jeremy so far forgot his pose of superior
detachment to lend his most careful attention.
Mr
Propter said it again. 'And that's
true,' he went on, 'of every ideal except the highest, which is the ideal of
liberation - liberation from personality, liberation from time and craving,
liberation into union with God, if you don't object to the word, Mr
Pordage. Many people do,' he added. 'It's one of the words that the Mrs Grundys
of the intellect find peculiarly shocking.
I always try to spare their sensibilities, if I can. Well, to return to our idealist,' he
continued, glad to see that Jeremy had been constrained, in spite of himself,
to smile. 'If he serves any ideal except
the highest - whether it's the artist's ideal of beauty, or the scientist's
ideal of truth, or the humanitarian's ideal of what currently passes for
goodness - he's not serving God; he's serving a magnified aspect of
himself. He may be completely devoted;
but in the last analysis his devotion turns out to be directed towards an
aspect of his own personality. His
apparent selflessness is really not a liberation from his ego, but merely
another form of bondage. This means that
science may be bad for scientists, even when it appears to be a deliverer. And the same holds good of art, of
scholarship, of humanitarianism.'
Jeremy
thought nostalgically of his library at The Araucarias. Why couldn't this old madman be content to
take things as they came?
'And what
about other people?' Pete was saying.
'People who aren't scientists.
Hasn't it helped to set them free?'
Mr
Propter nodded. 'And it has also helped
to tie them more closely to themselves.
And what's more, I should guess that it has increased bondage more than
it has diminished it - and will tend to go on increasing it, progressively.'
'How do
you figure that out?'
'Through
its applications,' Mr Propter answered.
'Applications to warfare, first of all.
Better planes, better explosives, better guns and gases - every
improvement increases the sum of fear and hatred, widens the incidence of
nationalistic hysteria. In other words,
every improvement in armaments makes it more difficult to forget those horrible
projections of themselves they call their ideals of patriotism, heroism, glory
and all the rest. And even the less
destructive applications of science aren't really much more satisfactory. For what do such applications result in? The multiplication of possessable objects;
the invention of new instruments of stimulation; the disseminations of new
wants through propaganda aimed at equating possession with well-being and
incessant stimulation with happiness.
'But
incessant stimulation from without is a source of bondage; and so is the
preoccupation with possessions. And now
you're threatening to prolong our lives, so that we can go on being stimulated,
go on desiring possessions, go on waving flags and hating our enemies and being
afraid of air attack - go on and on, generation after generation, sinking
deeper and deeper into the stinking slough of our personality.' He shook his head. 'No, I can't quite share your optimism about
science.'
There was
a silence while Pete debated with himself whether to ask Mr Propter about
love. In the end he decided he
wouldn't. Virginia was too sacred. (But why, why had she turned back at the
Grotto? What could he have said or done
to offend her?) As much to prevent
himself from brooding over these problems as because he wanted to know the old
man's opinions on the last of the three things that seemed to him supremely
valuable, he looked up at Mr Propter and asked, 'What about social
justice? I mean, take the French
Revolution. Or Russia. And what about this Spanish business -
fighting for liberty and democracy against fascist aggression?' He had tried to remain perfectly calm and
scientific about the whole thing; but his voice trembled a little as he spoke
the last words. In spite of their
familiarity (perhaps because of their familiarity), phrases like 'fascist
aggression' still had power to move him to the depths.
'Napoleon
came out of the French Revolution,' said Mr Propter, after a moment's
silence. 'German nationalism came out of
Napoleon. The war of 1870 came out of
German nationalism. The war of 1914 came
out of the war of 1870. Hitler came out
of the war of 1914. Those are the bad
results of the French Revolution. The
good results were the enfranchisement of the French peasants and the spread of
political democracy. Put the good
results in one scale of your balance and the bad ones in the other, and try
which set is the heavier. Then perform
the same operation with Russia. Put the
abolition of tsardom and capitalism in one scale; and in the other put Stalin,
put the secret police, put the famines, put twenty years of hardship for a
hundred and fifty million people, put the liquidation of intellectuals and
kulaks and old bolsheviks, put the hordes of slaves in prison camps; put the
military conscription of everybody, male and female, from childhood to old age,
put the revolutionary propaganda which spurred the bourgeoisie to invent
fascism.' Mr Propter shook his
head. 'Or take the fight for democracy
in Spain,' he went on. 'There was a
fight for democracy all over Europe not so long ago. Rational prognosis can only be based on past
experience. Look at the results of 1914
and then ask yourself what chance the loyalists ever had of establishing a
liberal régime at the end of a long war.
The others are winning; so we shall never have the opportunity of seeing
what circumstances and their own passions would have driven those
well-intentioned liberals to become.'
'But,
hell!' Pete broke out, 'what do you expect people to do when they're attacked
by the fascists? Sit down and let their
throats be cut?'
'Of
course not,' said Mr Propter. 'I expect
them to fight. And the expectation
is based on my previous knowledge of human behaviour. But the fact that people generally do react
to that kind of situation in that kind of way doesn't prove that it's the best
way of reacting. Experience makes me
expect that they'll behave like that.
But experience also makes me expect that, if they do behave like that,
the results will be disastrous.'
'Well,
how do you want us to act? Do you want
us to sit still and do nothing?'
'Not
nothing,' said Mr Propter. 'Merely
something appropriate.'
'But what
is appropriate?'
'Not war,
anyhow. Not violent revolution. Nor yet politics, to any considerable extent,
I should guess.'
'Then
what?'
'That's
what we've got to discover. The main
lines are clear enough. But there's
still a lot of work to be done on the practical details.'
Pete was
not listening. His mind had gone back to
that time in Aragon when life had seemed supremely significant. 'But those boys, back there in Spain,' he
burst out. 'You didn't know them, Mr
Propter. They were wonderful, really
they were. Never mean to you, and brave,
and loyal and ... and everything.' He
wrestled with the inadequacies of his vocabulary, with the fear of making an
exhibition of himself by talking big, like a highbrow. 'They weren't living for themselves, I can
tell you that, Mr Propter.' He looked
into the old man's face almost supplicatingly, as though imploring him to
believe. 'They were living for something
much bigger than themselves - like what you were talking about just now; you
know, something more than just personal.'
'And what
about Hitler's boys?' Mr Propter asked.
'What about Mussolini's boys?
What about Stalin's boys? Do you
suppose they're not just as brave, just as kind to one another, just as loyal
to their cause and just as firmly convinced that it's the cause of justice,
truth, freedom, right and honour?' He
looked at Pete enquiringly; but Pete said nothing. 'The fact that people have a lot of virtues,'
Mr Propter went on, 'doesn't prove anything about the goodness of their
actions. You can have all the virtues -
that's to say, all except the two that really matter, understanding and
compassion - you can have all the others, I say, and be a thoroughly bad
man. Indeed, you can't be really bad
unless you do have most of the virtues.
Look at Milton's Satan for example.
Brave, strong, generous, loyal, prudent, temperate,
self-sacrificing. And let's give the
dictators the credit that's due to them; some of them are nearly as virtuous as
Satan. Not quite, I admit, but
nearly. That's why they can achieve so
much evil.'
His
elbows on his knees, Pete sat in silence, frowning. 'But that feeling,' he said at last. 'That feeling there was between us. You know - the friendship; only it was more
than just ordinary friendship. And the
feeling of being there all together - fighting for the same thing - and the
thing being worth while - and then the danger, and the rain, and that awful
cold at nights, and the heat in summer, and being thirsty, and even those lice
and the dirt - share and share alike in everything bad or good - and knowing
that tomorrow it might be your turn, or one of the other boys - your turn for
the field hospital (and the chances were they wouldn't have enough
anaesthetics, except maybe for an amputation or something like that), or your
turn for the burial-party. All those
feelings, Mr Propter - I just can't believe they didn't mean something.'
'They
meant themselves,' said Mr Propter.
Jeremy
saw the opportunity for a counter-attack and, with a promptitude unusual in
him, immediately took it. 'Doesn't the
same thing apply to your feelings about eternity, or whatever it is?' he asked.
'Of
course it does,' said Mr Propter.
'Well, in
that case, how can you claim any validity for it? The feeling means itself, and that's all
there is to it.'
'It means
itself,' Mr Propter agreed. 'But what
precisely is this "itself"? In
other words, what is the nature of the feeling?'
'Don't ask
me,' said Jeremy with a shake of the head and a comically puzzled lift of the
eyebrows. 'I really don't know.'
Mr
Propter smiled. 'I know you don't want
to know,' he said. 'And I won't ask
you. I'll just state the facts. The feeling in question is a non-personal
experience of timeless peace.
Accordingly, non-personal, timelessness and peace are what it
means. Now let's consider the feeling
that Pete had been talking about. These
are all personal feelings, evoked by temporal situations, and characterized by
a sense of excitement. Intensification
of the ego within the world of time and craving - that's what these feelings
meant.'
'But you
can't call self-sacrifice an intensification of the ego,' said Pete.
'I can
and I do,' Mr Propter insisted. 'For the
good reason that it generally is.
Self-sacrifice to any but the highest cause is sacrifice to an ideal,
which is simply a projection of the ego.
What is commonly called self-sacrifice is the sacrifice of one part of
the ego to another part, one set of personal feelings and passions for another
set - as when the feelings connected with money or sex are sacrificed in order
that the ego may have the feelings of superiority, solidarity and hatred which
are associated with patriotism, or any kind of political or religious
fanaticism.'
Pete
shook his head. 'Sometimes,' he said,
with a smile of rueful perplexity, 'sometimes you almost talk like Dr
Obispo. You know - cynically.'
Mr
Propter laughed. 'It's good to be
cynical,' he said. 'That is, if you know
when to stop. Most of the things that
we're all taught to respect and reverence - they don't deserve anything but
cynicism. Take your own case. You've been taught to worship ideals like
patriotism, social justice, science, romantic love. You've been told that such virtues as
loyalty, temperance, courage and prudence are good in themselves, in any
circumstances. You've been assured that
self-sacrifice is always splendid and fine feelings invariably good. And it's all nonsense, all a pack of lies
that people have made up in order to justify themselves in continuing to deny
God and wallow in their own egotism.
Unless you're steadily and unflaggingly cynical about the solemn twaddle
that's talked by bishops and bankers and professors and politicians and all the
rest of them, you're lost. Utterly
lost. Doomed to perpetual imprisonment
in your ego - doomed to be a personality in a world of personalities; and a
world of personalities in this world, the world of greed and fear and
hatred, of war and capitalism and dictatorship and slavery. Yes, you've got to be cynical, Pete. Specially cynical about all the actions and
feelings you've been taught to suppose were good. Most of them are not good. They're merely evils which happen to be
regarded as creditable. But,
unfortunately, creditable evil is just as bad as discreditable evil. Scribes and Pharisees aren't any better, in
the last analysis, than publicans and sinners.
Indeed, they're often much worse.
For several reasons. Being well
thought of by others, they think well of themselves; and nothing so confirms an
egotism as thinking well of oneself. In
the next place, publicans and sinners are generally just human animals, without
enough energy or self-control to do much harm.
Whereas the Scribes and Pharisees have all the virtues, except the only
two which count, and enough intelligence to understand everything except the
real nature of the world. Publicans and
sinners merely fornicate and overeat, and get drunk. The people who make wars, the people who
reduce their fellows to slavery, the people who kill and torture and tell lies
in the name of their sacred causes, the really evil people, in a word - these
are never the publicans and the sinners.
No, they're the virtuous, respectable men, who have the finest feelings,
the best brains, the noblest ideals.'
'So what
it all boils down to,' Pete concluded in a tone of angry despair, 'is that
there just isn't anything you can do. Is
that it?'
'Yes and
no,' said Mr Propter, in his quiet judicial way. 'On the strictly human level, the level of
time and cravings, I should say that it's quite true: in the last resort, there
isn't anything you can do.'
'But
that's just defeatism!' Pete protested.
'Why is
it defeatism to be realistic?'
'There must
be something to do!'
'I see no
"must" about it.'
'Then
what about the reformers and all those people?
If you're right, they're just wasting their time.'
'It
depends what they think they're doing,' said Mr Propter. 'If they think they're just temporarily
palliating particular distresses, if they see themselves as people engaged in
laboriously deflecting evil from old channels into new and slightly different
channels, then they can justifiably claim to be successful. But if they think they're making good appear
where evil was before, why, then, all history clearly shows that they are
wasting their time.'
'But why
can't they make good appear where evil was before?'
'Why do
we fall when we jump out of a tenth-story window? Because the nature of things happens to be
such that we do fall. And the nature of
things is such that, on the strictly human level of time and craving, you can't
achieve anything but evil. If you choose
to work exclusively on that level, and exclusively for the ideals and causes that
are characteristic of it, then you're insane if you expect to transform evil
into good. You're insane because
experience should have shown you that, on that level, there doesn't happen to
be any good. There are only different
degrees and different kinds of evil.'
'Then
what do you want people to do?'
'Don't talk as though it were all my fault,' said Mr
Propter. 'I didn't invent the universe.'
'What
ought they to do, then?'
'Well, if
they want fresh varieties of evil, let them go on with what they're doing
now. But if they want good, they'll have
to change their tactics. And the
encouraging thing,' Mr Propter added in another tone, 'the encouraging thing is
that there are tactics which will produce good. We've seen that there's nothing to be done on
the strictly human level - or rather there are millions of things to be done,
only none of them will achieve any good.
But there is something effective to be done on the levels where
good actually exists. So you see, Pete,
I'm not a defeatist. I'm a
strategist. I believe that if a battle
is to be fought, it had better be fought under conditions in which there's at
least some chance of winning. I believe
that, if you want the golden fleece, it's more sensible to go to the place
where it exists than to rush round performing prodigies of valour in a country
where all the fleeces happen to be coal-black.'
'Then
where ought we to fight for good?'
'Where
good is.'
'But
where is it?'
'On the
level below the human and on the level above.
On the animal level and on the level ... well, you can take your choice
of names: the level of eternity; the level, if you don't object, of God; the
level of the spirit - only that happens to be about the most ambiguous word in
the language. On the lower level, good exists
as the proper functioning of the organism in accordance with the laws of its
own being. On the higher level, it
exists in the form of a knowledge of the world without desire or aversion; it
exists as the experience of eternity, as the transcendence of personality, the
extension of consciousness beyond the limits imposed by the ego. Strictly human activities are activities that
prevent the manifestation of good on the other two levels. For, insofar as we're human, we're obsessed
with time, we're passionately concerned with our personalities which we call
our policies, our ideals, our religions.
And what are the results? Being
obsessed with time and our egos, we are for ever craving and worrying. But nothing impairs the normal functioning of
the organism like craving and revulsion, like greed and fear and worry. Directly or indirectly, most of our physical
ailments and disabilities are due to worry and craving. We worry and crave ourselves into high
blood-pressure, heart disease, tuberculosis, peptic ulcer, low resistance to
infection, neurasthenia, sexual aberrations, insanity, suicide. Not to mention all the rest.' Mr Proper waved his hand comprehensively. 'Craving even prevents us from seeing
properly,' he went on. 'The harder we
try to see, the graver our error of accommodation. And it's the same with bodily posture: the
more we worry about doing the thing immediately ahead of us in time, the more
we interfere with our correct body posture and the worse, in consequence,
becomes the functioning of the entire organism.
In a word, insofar as we're human beings, we prevent ourselves from
realizing the physiological and instinctive good that we're capable of as
animals. And, mutatis mutandis,
the same thing is true in regard to the sphere above. Insofar as we're human beings, we prevent
ourselves from realizing the spiritual and timeless good that we're capable of
as potential inhabitants of eternity, as potential enjoyers of the beatific
vision. We worry and crave ourselves out
of the very possibility of transcending personality and knowing, intellectually
at first and then by direct experience, the true nature of the world.'
Mr
Propter was silent for a moment; then, with a sudden smile, 'Luckily,' he went
on, 'most of us don't manage to behave like human beings all the time. We forget our wretched little egos and those
horrible great projections of our egos in the ideal world - forget them and
relapse for a while into harmless animality.
The organism gets a chance to function according to its own laws; in
other words, it gets a chance to realize such good as it's capable of. That's why we're as healthy and sane as we
are. Even in great cities, as many as
four persons out of five manage to go through life without having to be treated
in a lunatic asylum. If we were
consistently human, the percentage of mental cases would rise from twenty to a
hundred. But fortunately most of us are
incapable of consistency - the animal always resuming its rights. And to some people fairly frequently, perhaps
occasionally to all, there come little flashes of illumination - momentary
glimpses into the nature of the world as it is for a consciousness liberated
from appetite and time, of the world as it might be if we didn't choose to deny
God by being our personal selves. Those
flashes come to us when we're off our guards; then craving and worry come
rushing back and the light is eclipsed once more by our personality and its
lunatic ideals, its criminal policies and plans.'
There was
silence. The sun had gone. Behind the mountains to the west, a pale
yellow light faded through green into a blue that deepened as it climbed. At the zenith, it was all night.
Pete sat
quite still, staring into the dark, but still transparent sky above the
northern peaks. That voice, so calm at
first and then at the end so powerfully resonant, those words, now mercilessly
critical of all the things to which he had given his allegiance, now charged
with the half-comprehended promise of things incommensurably worthier of loyalty,
had left him profoundly moved and at the same time perplexed and at a
loss. Everything, he saw, would have to
be thought out again, from the beginning - science, politics, perhaps even
love, even Virginia. He was appalled by
the prospect and yet, in another part of his being, attracted; he felt
resentful at the thought of Mr Propter, but at the same time loved the
disquieting old man; loved him for what he did and, above all, for what he so
admirably and, in Pete's own experience, uniquely was - disinterestedly
friendly, at once serene and powerful, gentle and strong, self-effacing and yet
intensely there, more present, so to speak, radiating more life than
anyone else.
Jeremy
Pordage had also found himself taking an interest in what the old man said, had
even, like Pete, experienced the stirrings of a certain disquiet - a disquiet
none the less disquieting for having stirred in him before. The substance of what Mr Propter had said was
familiar to him. For, of course, he had
read all the significant books on the subject - would have thought himself
barbarously uneducated if he hadn't - had read Sankara and Eckhart, the Pali
texts and John of the Cross, Charles de Condran and the Bardo, the Patanjali
and the Pseudo-Dionysius. He had read
them and been moved by them into wondering whether he oughtn't to do something
about them; and, because he had been moved in this way, he had taken the most
elaborate pains to make fun of them, not only to other people, but also and
above all to himself. 'You've never bought
your ticket to Athens,' the man had said - damn his eyes! Why did he want to go putting these things
over on one? All one asked was to be
left in peace, to take things as they came.
Things as they came - one's books, one's little articles, and Lady
Fredegond's ear-trumpet, and Palestrina, and steak-and-kidney pudding at the
Reform, and Mae and Doris. Which
reminded him that today was Friday; if he were in England it would be his
afternoon at the flat in Maida Vale.
Deliberately he turned his attention away from Mr Propter and thought
instead of those alternate Friday afternoons; of the pink lampshades; the smell
of talcum powder and perspiration; the Trojan women, as he called them because
they worked so hard, in their kimonos from Marks and Spencer's; the framed
reproductions of pictures by Poynter and Alma Tadema (delicious irony, that
works which the Victorians had regarded as art should have come to serve, a
generation later, as pornography in a trollop's bedroom!); and, finally, the
erotic routine, so matter-of-factly sordid, so conscientiously and
professionally low, with a lowness and a sordidness that constituted, for
Jeremy, their greatest charm, that he prized more highly than any amount of
moonlight and romance, any number of lyrics and Liebestods. Infinite squalor in a little room! It was the apotheosis of refinement, the
logical conclusion of good taste.
CHAPTER TEN
This Friday, Mr Stoyte's afternoon in town had been
exceptionally uneventful. Nothing
untoward had occurred during the preceding week. In the course of his various meetings and
interviews nobody had said or done anything to make him lose his tempter. The reports on business conditions had been
very satisfactory. The Japs had bought
another hundred thousand barrels of oil.
Copper was up two cents. The
demand for bentonite was definitely increasing.
True, applications for bank credit had been rather disappointing; but
the influenza epidemic had raised the weekly turnover of the Pantheon to a figure
well above the average.
Things
went so smoothly that Mr Stoyte was through with all his business more than an
hour before he had expected. Finding
himself with time to spare, he stopped on the way home at his agent's, to find
out what was happening on the estate.
The interview lasted only a few minutes - long enough, however, to put
Mr Stoyte in a fury that sent him rushing out to the car.
'Drive to
Mr Propter's,' he ordered with a peremptory ferocity as he slammed the door.
What the
hell did Bill Propter think he was doing? he kept indignantly asking
himself. Shoving his nose into other
people's business. And all on account of
those lousy bums who had come to pick oranges!
All for those tramps, those stinking, filthy hobos! Mr Stoyte had a peculiar hatred for the
ragged hordes of transients on whom he depended for the harvesting of his
crops, a hatred that was more than the rich man's ordinary dislike of the
poor. Not that he didn't experience that
complex mixture of fear and physical disgust, of stifled compassion and shame
transformed by repression into chronic exasperation. He did.
But over and above this common and generic dislike for poor people, he
was moved by other hatreds of his own.
Mr Stoyte was a rich man who had been poor. In the six years between the time when he ran
away from his father and grandmother in Nashville and the time when he had been
adopted by the black sheep of the family, his Uncle Tom, in California, Jo
Stoyte had learned, as he imagined, everything there was to be known about
being poor. Those years had left him
with an ineradicable hatred for the circumstances of poverty and at the same
time an ineradicable contempt for all those who had been too stupid, or too
weak, or too unlucky, to climb out of the hell into which they had fallen or
been born. The poor were odious to him,
not only because they were potentially a menace to his position in society, not
only because their misfortunes demanded a sympathy he did not wish to give, but
also because they reminded him of what he himself had suffered in the past, and
at the same time because the fact that they were still poor was a sufficient
proof of their contemptibleness and his own superiority. And since he had suffered what they were now
suffering, it was only right that they should go on suffering what he had
suffered. Also, since their continued
poverty proved them contemptible, it was proper that he, who was now rich,
should treat them in every way as the contemptible creatures they had shown
themselves to be. Such was the logical
of Mr Stoyte's emotions. And here was
Bill Propter, running counter to this logic by telling the agent that they
oughtn't to take advantage of the glut of transient labour to force down wages;
that they ought, on the contrary, to raise them - raise them, if you please, at
a time when these bums were swarming over the State like a plague of Mormon
crickets! And not only that; they ought
to build accommodation for them - cabins, like the ones that crazy fool Bill
had built for them himself; two-roomed cabins at six or seven hundred dollars
apiece - for bums like that, and their women, and those disgusting children who
were so filthy dirty he wouldn't have them in his hospital; not unless they
were really dying of appendicitis or something - you couldn't refuse them then,
of course. But meanwhile, what the hell
did Bill Propter think he was doing? And
it wasn't the first time either that he'd tried to interfere. Gliding through the twilight of the orange
groves, Mr Stoyte kept striking the palm of his left hand with his clenched
right fist.
'I'll let
him have it,' he whispered to himself.
'I'll let him have it.'
Fifty
years before, Bill Propter had been the only boy in the school who, even though
he was the older and stronger, didn't make fun of him for being fat. They had met again when Bill was teaching at
Berkeley and he himself had made good in the real estate game and had just gone
into oil. Partly in gratitude for the
way Bill Propter had acted when they were boys, partly also in order to display
his power, to redress the balance of superiority in his own favour, Jo Stoyte
had wanted to do something handsome for the young assistant professor. But in spite of his modest salary and the two
or three miserable thousand dollars a year his father had left him, Bill
Propter hadn't wanted anything done for him.
He had seemed genuinely grateful, he had been perfectly courteous and
friendly; but he just didn't want to come in on the ground floor of Consol Oil
- didn't want to because, as he kept explaining, he had all he needed and
preferred not to have anything more.
Jo's effort to redress the balance of superiority had failed. Failed disastrously, because, by refusing his
offer, Bill had done something which, though he called him a fool for doing it,
compelled Jo Stoyte secretly to admire him more than ever. Extorted against his will, this admiration
bred a corresponding resentment towards its object. Jo Stoyte felt aggrieved that Bill had given
him so many reasons for liking him. He
would have preferred to like him without a reason, in spite of his
shortcomings. But Bill had few
shortcomings and many merits, merits which Jo himself did not have and whose
presence in Bill he therefore regarded as an affront. Thus it was that all the reasons for liking
Bill Propter were also, in Jo's eyes, equally valid reasons for disliking
him. He continued to call Bill a fool;
but he felt him as a standing reproach. And
yet the nature of this standing reproach was such that he liked to be in Bill's
company. It was because Bill had settled
down on a ten-acre patch of land in this part of the valley that Mr Stoyte had
decided to build his castle on the site where it now stood. He wanted to be near Bill Propter, even
though, in practice, there was almost nothing that Bill could do or say that
didn't annoy him. Today, this chronic
exasperation had been fanned by Mr Stoyte's hatred of the transients into a
passion of fury.
'I'll let
him have it,' he repeated again and again.
the car
came to a halt, and before the chauffeur could open the door for him, Mr Stoyte
had darted out and was hurrying in his determined way, looking neither to right
nor left, up the path that led from the road to his old friend's bungalow.
'Hullo,
Jo,' a familiar voice called from the shadow under the eucalyptus trees.
Mr Stoyte
turned, peered through the twilight, then, without a word, hurried towards the
bench on which the three men were sitting.
There was a chorus of 'Good evenings' and, as he approached, Pete rose
politely and offered him his place.
Ignoring his gesture and his very presence, Mr Stoyte addressed himself
immediately to Bill Propter.
'Why the
hell can't you leave my man alone?' he almost shouted.
Mr
Propter looked at him with only a moderate astonishment. He was used to these outbursts from poor Jo;
he had long since divined their fundamental cause and knew by experience how to
deal with them.
'Which
man, Jo?' he asked.
'Bob
Hansen, of course. What do you mean by
going to him behind my back?'
'When I
went to you,' said Mr Propter, 'you told me it was Hansen's business. So I went to Hansen.'
This was
so infuriatingly true that Mr Stoyte could only resort to roaring. He roared.
'Interfering with him in his work!
What's the idea?'
'Pete's
offering you a seat,' Mr Propter put in.
'Or, if you prefer it, there's an iron chair behind you. You'd better sit down, Jo.'
'I'm not
going to sit down,' Mr Stoyte bellowed.
'And I want an answer. What's the
idea?'
'The
idea?' Mr Propter repeated in his slow quiet way. 'Well, it's quite an old one, you know. I didn't invent it.'
'Can't
you answer me?'
'It's the
idea that men and women are human beings.
Not vermin.'
'Those
bums of yours!'
Mr
Propter turned to Pete. 'You may as well
sit down again,' he said.
'Those
lousy bums! I tell you I won't stand
it.'
'Besides,'
Mr Propter went on, 'I'm a practical man.
You're not.'
'Me not
practical?' Mr Stoyte echoed with indignant amazement. 'Not practical? Well, look at the place I live in and then look
at this dump of yours.'
'Exactly. That proves the point. You're hopelessly romantic, Jo; so romantic,
you think people can work when they haven't had enough to eat.'
'You're
trying to make communists of them.' The
word 'communist' renewed Mr Stoyte's passion and at the same time justified it;
his indignation ceased to be merely personal and became righteous. 'You're nothing but a communist
agitator.' His voice trembled, Mr
Propter sadly noticed, just as Pete's had trembled half an hour before at the
words 'fascist aggression.' He wondered
if the boy had noticed or, having noticed, would take the hint. 'Nothing but a communist agitator,' Mr Stoyte
repeated with a crusader's zeal.
'I
thought we were talking about eating,' said Mr Propter.
'You're
stalling!'
'Eating
and working - wasn't that it?'
'I've put
up with you all these years,' Mr Stoyte went on. 'For old times' sake. But now I'm through. I'm sick of you. Talking communism to those bums! Making the place dangerous for decent people
to live in.'
'Decent?'
Mr Propter echoed, and was tempted to laugh, but immediately checked the
impulse. Being laughed at in the
presence of Pete and Mr Pordage might goad the poor fellow into doing something
irreparably stupid.
'I'll
have you run out of the valley,' Mr Stoyte was roaring. 'I'll see that you're ...' He broke off in
the middle of the sentence and stood there for a few seconds in silence, his
mouth still open and working, his eyes staring.
That drumming in the ears, that tingling heat in the face - they had
suddenly reminded him of his blood-pressure, of Dr Obispo, of death. Death and that flame-coloured text in his
bedroom at home. Terrible to fall into
the hands of the living God - not Prudence's God, of course; the other one, the
real one, the God of his father and grandmother.
Mr Stoyte
drew a deep breath, pulled out his handkerchief, wiped his face and neck, then,
without uttering another word, turned and began to walk away.
Mr
Propter got up, hurried after him and, in spite of the other's angry motion of
recoil, took Mr Stoyte's arm and walked along beside him.
'I want
to show you something, Jo,' he said.
'Something that'll interest you, I think.'
'I don't
want to see it,' said Mr Stoyte between his false teeth.
Mr
Propter paid no attention, but continued to lead him towards the back of the
house. 'It's a gadget that Abbot of the
Smithsonian has been working on for some time,' he continued. 'A thing for making use of solar
energy.' He interrupted himself for a
moment to call back to the others to follow him; then turned again to Mr Stoyte
and resumed the conversation. 'Much more
compact than anything of the kind that's ever been made before,' he said. 'Much more efficient, too.' And he went on to describe the system of trough-shaped
reflectors, the tubes of oil heated to a temperature of four or five hundred
degrees Fahrenheit; the boiler for raising steam, if you wanted to run a
low-pressure engine; the cooking-range and water-heater, if you were using it
only for domestic purposes. 'Pity the
sun's down,' he said, as they stood in front of the machine. 'I'd have liked to show you the way it works
the engine. I've had two horse-power,
eight hours a day, ever since I got the thing working last week. Not bad considering we're still in
January. We'll have her working overtime
all summer.'
Mr Stoyte
had intended to persist in his silence - just to show Bill that he was still
angry, that he hadn't forgiven him; but his interest in the machine and, above
all, his exasperated concern with Bill's idiotic, crackpot notions were too
much for him. 'What the hell do you want
with two horse-power, eight hours a day?' he asked.
'To run
my electric generator.'
'But what
do you want with an electric generator?
Haven't you got your current wired in from the city?'
'Of
course. And I'm trying to see how far I
can be independent of the city.'
'But what
for?'
Mr
Propter uttered a little laugh. 'Because
I believe in Jeffersonian democracy.'
'What the
hell has Jeffersonian democracy to do with it?' said Mr Stoyte with mounting
irritation. 'Can't you believe in
Jefferson and have your current wired in from the city?'
'That's
exactly it,' said Mr Propter; 'you almost certainly can't.'
'What do
you mean?'
'What I
say,' Mr Propter answered mildly.
'I believe
in democracy too,' Mr Stoyte announced with a look of defiance.
'I know
you do. And you also believe in being
the undisputed boss in all your businesses.'
'I should
hope so!'
'There's another
name for an undisputed boss,' said Mr Propter.
'"Dictator."'
'What are
you trying to get at?'
'Merely
at the facts. You believe in democracy;
but you're at the head of the businesses which have to be run
dictatorially. And your subordinates have
to accept your dictatorship because they're dependent on you for their
living. In Russia they'd depend on
government officials for their living.
Perhaps you think that's an improvement,' he added, turning to Pete.
Pete
nodded. 'I'm all for the public
ownership of the means of production,' he said.
It was the first time he had openly confessed his faith in the presence
of his employer; he felt happy at having dared to be a Daniel.
'"Public
ownership of the means of production,"' Mr Propter repeated. 'But unfortunately governments have a way of
regarding the individual producers as being parts of the means. Frankly, I'd rather have Jo Stoyte as my boss
than Jo Stalin. This Jo' (he laid his
hand on Mr Stoyte's shoulder), 'this Jo can't have you executed; he can't send
you to the Arctic; he can't prevent you from getting a job under another
boss. Whereas the other Jo ...' he shook
his head. 'Not that,' he added, 'I'm
exactly longing to have even this Jo as my boss.'
'You'd be
fired pretty quick,' growled Mr Stoyte.
'I don't
want any boss,' Mr Propter went on.
'The more bosses, the less democracy.
But unless people can support themselves, they've got to have a boss
who'll undertake to do it for them. So
the less self-support, the less democracy. In Jefferson's day, a great many Americans did
support themselves. They were
economically independent. Independent of
government and independent of big business.
Hence the Constitution.'
'We've
still got the Constitution,' said Mr Stoyte.
'No
doubt,' Mr Propter agreed. 'But if we
had to make a new Constitution today, what would it be like? A Constitution to fit the facts of New York
and Chicago and Detroit; of United States Steel and the Public Utilities and
General Motors and the C.I.O. and the government departments. What on earth would it be like?' he
repeated. 'We respect our old
Constitution, but in fact we live under a new one. And if we want to live under the first, we've
got to recreate something like the conditions under which the first was
made. That's why I'm interested in this
gadget.' He patted the frame of the
machine. 'Because it may help to give
independence to anyone who desires independence. Not that many do desire it,' he added
parenthetically. 'The propaganda in
favour of dependence is too strong.
They've come to believe that you can't be happy unless you're entirely
dependent on government or centralized business. But for the few who do care about democracy,
who really want to be free in the Jeffersonian sense, this thing may be a
help. If it makes them independent of
fuel and power, that's already a great deal.'
Mr Stoyte
looked anxious. 'Do you really think
it'll do that?'
'Why
not?' said Mr Propter. 'There's a lot of
sunshine running to waste in this part of the country.'
Mr Stoyte
thought of his presidency of the Consol Oil Company. 'It won't be good for the oil business,' he
said.
'I should
hate it to be good for the oil business,' Mr Propter answered cheerfully.
'And what
about coal?' He had an interest in a
group of West Virginia mines. 'And the
railroads?' There was that big block of
Union Pacific shares that had belonged to Prudence. 'The railroads can't get on without long
hauls. And steel,' he added
disinterestedly; for his holdings in Bethlehem Steel were almost
negligible. 'What happens to steel if
you hurt the railroads and cut down trucking?
You're going against progress,' he burst out in another access of
righteous indignation. 'You're turning
back the clock.'
'Don't
worry, Jo,' said Mr Propter. 'It won't
affect your dividends for quite a long while.
There'll be plenty of time to adjust to the new conditions.'
'With an
admirable effort, Mr Stoyte controlled his temper. 'You seem to figure I can't think of anything
but money,' he said with dignity. 'Well,
it may interest you to know that I've decided to give Dr Mulge another thirty
thousand dollars for his Art School.'
(The decision had been made there and then, for the sole purpose of
serving as a weapon in the perennial battle with Bill Propter.) 'And if you think,' he added as an
afterthought, 'if you think I'm only concerned with my own interests, read the
special World's Fair number of the New York Times. Read that,' he insisted with the solemnity of
a fundamentalist recommending the Book of Revelation. 'You'll see that the most forward-looking men
in the country think as I do.' He spoke
with unaccustomed and incongruous unction, in the phraseology of after-dinner
eloquence. 'The way of progress is the
way of better organization, more service from business, more goods for the
consumer!' Then, incoherently, 'Look at
the way a housewife goes to her grocer,' he added, 'and buys a package of some
nationally advertised cereal or something.
That's progress. Not your
crackpot idea of doing everything at home with this idiotic contraption.' Mr Stoyte had reverted completely to his
ordinary style. 'You always were a fool,
Bill, and I guess you always will be.
And remember what I told you about interfering with Bob Hansen. I won't stand for it.' In dramatic silence he walked away; but after
taking a few steps he halted and called back over his shoulder, 'Come up to
dinner, if you feel like it.'
'Thanks,'
said Mr Propter. 'I will.'
Mr Stoyte
walked briskly towards his car. He had
forgotten about high blood-pressure and the living God and felt all of a sudden
unaccountably and unreasonably happy. It
was not that he had scored any notable success in his battle with Bill Propter. He hadn't; and, what was more, in the process
of not scoring a success he had made, and was even half aware that he had made,
a bit of a fool of himself. The source
of his happiness was elsewhere. He was
happy, though he would never have admitted the fact, because, in spite of
everything, Bill seemed to like him.
In the
car, as he drove back to the castle, he whistled to himself.
Entering
(with his hat on, as usual; for even after all these years he still derived a
childish pleasure from the contrast between the palace in which he lived and
the proletarian manners he affected), Mr Stoyte crossed the great hall, stepped
into the elevator and, from the elevator, walked directly into Virginia's
boudoir.
When he
opened the door, the two were sitting at least fifteen feet apart. Virginia was at the soda-counter, pensively
eating a chocolate-and-banana split; seated in an elegant pose on one of the
pink satin armchairs, Dr Obispo was in process of lighting a cigarette.
On Mr
Stoyte the impact of suspicion and jealousy was like the blow of a fist
directed (for the shock was physical and localized in the midriff) straight to
the solar plexus. His face contracted as
though with pain. And yet he had seen
nothing; there was no apparent cause for jealousy, no visible reason, in their
attitudes, their actions, their expressions, for suspicion. Dr Obispo's manner was perfectly easy and
natural; and the Baby's smile of startled and delighted welcome was angelic in
its candour.
'Uncle
Jo!' She ran to meet him and threw her
arms round his neck. 'Uncle Jo!'
The
warmth of her tone, the softness of her lips, had a magnified effect on Mr
Stoyte. Moved to the point at which he
was using the word to the limit of its double connotation, he murmured, 'My
Baby!' with a lingering emphasis. The
fact that he should have felt suspicious, even for a moment, of this pure and
adorable, this deliciously warm, resilient and perfumed child, filled him with
shame. And even Dr Obispo now heaped
coals of fire on his head.
'I was a
bit worried,' he said, as he got up from his chair, 'by the way you coughed
after lunch. That's why I came up here,
to make sure of catching you the moment you got in.' He put a hand in his pocket and, after half
drawing out and immediately replacing a little leather-bound volume, like a
prayer-book, extracted a stethoscope.
'Prevention's better than cure,' he went on. 'I'm not going to let you get influenza if I
can help it.'
Remembering
what a good week they had had at the Beverly Pantheon on account of the
epidemic, Mr Stoyte felt alarmed. 'I
don't feel bad,' he said. 'I guess that cough wasn't anything. Only my old - you know: the chronic
bronchitis.'
'Maybe it
was only that. But all the same, I'd
like to listen in.' Briskly
professional, Dr Obispo hung the
stethoscope round his neck.
'He's
right, Uncle Jo,' said the Baby.
Touched
by so much solicitude, and at the same time rather disturbed by the thought
that it might perhaps be influenza, Mr Stoyte took off his coat and waistcoat
and began to undo his tie. A moment
later he was standing stripped to the waist under the crystals of the
chandelier. Modestly, Virginia retired
again to her soda-fountain. Dr Obispo
slipped the ends of the curved nickel tubes of the stethoscope into his
ears. 'Take a deep breath,' he said as
he pressed the muzzle against Mr Stoyte's chest. 'Again,' he ordered. 'Now cough.'
Looking past that thick barrel of hairy flesh, he could see, on the wall
behind the inhabitants of Watteau's mournful paradise as they prepared to set
sail for some other paradise, doubtless yet more heartbreaking.
'Say
ninety-nine,' Dr Obispo commanded, returning from the embarkation for Cythera
to a near view of Mr Stoyte's thorax and abdomen.
'Ninety-nine,'
said Mr Stoyte. 'Ninety-nine. Ninety-nine.'
With
professional thoroughness, Dr Obispo shifted the muzzle of his stethoscope from
point to point on the curving barrel of flesh before him. There was nothing wrong, of course, with the
old buzzard. Just the familiar set of
râles and wheezes he always had. Perhaps
it would make things a bit more realistic if he were to take the creature down
to his office and stick him up in front of the fluoroscope. But no; he really couldn't be bothered. And, besides, this farce would be quite
enough.
'Cough
again,' he said, planting his instrument among the grey hairs on Mr Stoyte's
left pap. And among other things, he
went on to reflect, while Mr Stoyte forced out a succession of artificial
coughs, among other things, these old sacks of gut didn't smell too good. How any young girl could stand it, even for
money, he really couldn't imagine. And
yet the fact remained that there were thousands of them who not only stood it,
but actually enjoyed it. Or, perhaps,
'enjoy' was the wrong word. Because in
most cases there probably wasn't any question of enjoyment in the proper,
physiological sense of the word. It all
happened in the mind, not in the body.
They loved their old gut-sacks with their heads; loved them because they
admired them, because they were impressed by the gut-sack's position in the world,
or his knowledge, or his celebrity. What
they slept with wasn't the man; it was a reputation, it was the embodiment of a
function. And then, of course, some of
the girls were future models for Mother's Day advertisements; some were little
Florence Nightingales, on the look-out for a Crimean War. In those cases, the very infirmities of their
gut-sacks were added attractions. They
had the satisfaction of sleeping not only with a reputation or a stock of
wisdom, not only with a federal judgeship, for example, or the presidency of a
chamber of commerce, but also and simultaneously with a wounded soldier, with
an imbecile child, with a lovely stinking little baby who still made messes in
its bed. Even this cutie (Dr Obispo shot
a sideways glance in the direction of the soda-fountain), even this one had
something of the Florence Nightingale in her, something of the Gold Star
Mother. (And that in spite of the fact
that, with her conscious mind, she felt a kind of physical horror of physical
maternity.) Jo Stoyte was a little bit
her baby and her patient; and at the same time, of course, he was a great deal
her own private Abraham Lincoln.
Incidentally, he also happened to be the man with the chequebook. Which was a consideration, of course. But if he were only that, Virginia wouldn't
have been so nearly happy as she obviously was.
The chequebook was made more attractive by being in the hands of a
demigod who had to have a nanny to change his diapers.
'Turn
around, please.'
My Stoyte
obeyed. The back, Dr Obispo reflected,
was perceptibly less revolting than the front.
Perhaps because it was less personal.
'Take a
deep breath,' he said; for he was going to play the farce all over again on
this new stage. 'Another.'
Mr Stoyte
breathed enormously, like a cetacean.
'And
another,' said Dr Obispo. 'And again,'
said Dr Obispo, reflecting as the old man snorted, that his own chief asset was
a refreshing unlikeness to this smelly old gut-sack. She would take him, and take him, what was
more, on his own terms. No
Romeo-and-Juliet acts, no nonsense about Love and a large L, none of that
popular song claptrap with its skies of blue, dreams come true, heaven with
you. Just sensuality for its own
sake. The real, essential concrete
thing; no less, it went without saying, but also (and this most certainly
didn't go without saying; for the bitches were always trying to get you to
stick them on pedestals, or be their soul-mates), also no more. No more, to begin with, out of respect for
scientific truth. He believed in
scientific truth. Facts were facts;
accept them as such. It was a fact, for
example, that young girls in the pay of rich old men could be seduced without
much difficulty. It was also a fact that
rich old men, however successful at business, were generally so frightened,
ignorant and stupid that they could be bamboozled by any intelligent person who
chose to try.
'Say
ninety-nine again,' he said aloud.
'Ninety-nine. Ninety-nine.'
Ninety-nine
chances out of a hundred that they would never find out anything. That was the fact about old men. The fact about love was that it consisted
essentially of tumescence and detumescence.
So why embroider the fact with unnecessary fictions? Why not be realistic? Why not treat the whole
business scientifically?
'Ninety-nine,'
Mr Stoyte went on repeating, 'Ninety-nine.'
And then,
Dr Obispo went on to reflect, as he listened without interest to the
whisperings and crepitations inside the warm, smelly barrel before him, then
there were the more personal reasons for preferring to take love unadorned, in
the chemically pure condition. Personal
reasons that were also, of course, a fact that had to be accepted. For it was a fact that he personally found an
added pleasure in the imposition of his will upon the partner he had chosen. To
be pleasurable, this imposition of will must never be too easy, too much a
matter of course. Which ruled out all
professionals. The partner had to be an
amateur and, like all amateurs, committed to the thesis that tumescence and
detumescence should always be associated with LOVE, PASSION, SOUL-MATING - all in upper-case letters. In imposing his will, he imposed the
contradictory doctrine, the doctrine of tumescence and detumescence for
tumescence's and detumescence's sake.
All he asked was that a partner should give the thesis a practical
try-out - however reluctantly, however experimentally, for just this once only;
he didn't care. Just a single
try-out. After that it was up to
him. If he couldn't make a permanent and
enthusiastic convert of her, at any rate so far as he was concerned, then the
fault was his.
'Ninety-nine,
ninety-nine,' said Mr Stoyte with exemplary patience.
'You can
stop now,' Dr Obispo told him graciously.
Just one
try-out; he could practically guarantee himself success. It was a branch of applied physiology; he was
an expert, a specialist. The Claude
Bernard of the subject. And talk of imposing
one's will! You began by forcing the
girl to accept a thesis that was in flat contradiction to all the ideas she had
been brought up with, all the dreams-come-true rigmarole of popular
ideology. Quite a pleasant little
victory, to be sure. But it was only
when you got down to the applied physiology that the series of really
satisfying triumphs began. You took an
ordinarily rational human being, a good hundred-per-cent American with a
background, a position in society, a set of conventions, a code of ethics, a
religion (Catholic in the present instance, Dr Obispo remembered
parenthetically); you took this good citizen, with rights fully and formally
guaranteed by the Constitution, you took her (and perhaps she had come to the
place of assignation in her husband's Packard limousine and direct from a
banquet, with speeches in honour, say, of Dr Nicholas Murray Butler or the
retiring Archbishop of Indianapolis), you took her and you proceeded,
systematically and scientifically, to reduce this unique personality to a mere
epileptic body, moaning and gibbering under the excruciations of a pleasure for
which you, the Claude Bernard of the subject, were responsible and of which you
remained the enjoying, but always detached, always ironically amused,
spectator.
'Just a
few more deep breaths, if you don't mind.'
Wheezily
Mr Stoyte inhaled, then with a snorting sigh emptied his lungs.
CHAPTER ELEVEN
There was silence after Mr Stoyte's departure. A long silence, while each of the three men
thought his own private thoughts. It was
Pete who spoke first.
'Things
like that,' he said gloomily, 'they get me kind of wondering if I ought to go
on taking his money. What would you do,
Mr Propter, if you were me?'
'What
would I do?' Mr Propter reflected for a
moment. 'I'd go on working in Jo's
laboratory,' he said. 'But only so long
as I felt fairly certain that what I was doing wouldn't cause more harm than
good. One has to be a utilitarian in
these matters. A utilitarian with a
difference,' he qualified. 'Bentham
crossed with Eckhart, say, or Nagarjuna.'
'Poor
Bentham!' said Jeremy, horrified by the thought of what was being done to his
namesake.
Mr
Propter smiled. 'Poor Bentham,
indeed! Such a good, sweet, absurd,
intelligent man! So nearly right; but so
enormously wrong! Deluding himself with
the notion that the greatest happiness of the greatest number could be achieved
on the strictly human level - the level of time and evil, the level of the
absence of God. Poor Bentham!' he
repeated. 'What a great man he would
have been if only he could have grasped that good can't be had except where it
exists!'
'That
sort of utilitarian you're talking about,' said Pete, 'what would he feel about
the job I'm doing now?'
'I don't
know,' Mr Propter answered. 'I haven't
thought about it enough to guess what he'd say.
And, anyhow, we haven't yet got the empirical material on which a
reasonable judgement could be based. All
I know is that if I were in on this I'd be cautious. Infinitely cautious,' he insisted.
'And what
about the money?' Peter went on. 'Seeing
where it comes from and who it belongs to, do you think I ought to take it?'
'All
money's pretty dirty,' said Mr Propter.
'I don't know that poor Jo's is appreciably dirtier than anyone
else's. You may think it is; but that's
only because, for the first time, you're seeing money at its source - its
personal, human source. You're like one
of these city children who have been used to getting their milk in sterilized
bottles from a shiny white delivery wagon.
When they go out into the country and see it being pumped out of a big,
fat, smelly old animal, they're horrified, they're disgusted. It's the same with money. You've been used to getting it from behind a
bronze grating in a magnificent marble bank.
Now you've come out into the country and are living in the cowshed with
the animal that actually secretes the stuff.
And the process doesn't strike you as very savoury or hygienic. But the same process was going on, even when
you didn't know about it. And if you
weren't working for Jo Stoyte, you'd probably be working for some college or
university. But where do colleges and
universities get their money from? From
rich men. In other words, from people
like Jo Stoyte. Again it's dirt served
out in sterile containers - by a gentleman in a cap and gown this time.'
'So you
figure it's all right for me to go on like I am now?' said Pete.
'All right,' Mr Propter answered, 'in the sense that
it's not conspicuously worse than anything else.' Suddenly smiling, 'I was glad to hear that Dr
Mulge had got his Art School,' he said in another, lighter tone. 'Immediately after the Auditorium, too. It's a lot of money. But I suppose the prestige of being a patron
of learning is worth it. And, of course,
there's an enormous social pressure on the rich to make them become patrons of
learning. They're being pushed by shame
as well as pulled by the longing to believe they're the benefactors of
humanity. And, happily, with Dr Mulge a
rich man can have his kudos with safety.
No amount of art schools at Tarzana will ever disturb the status quo. Whereas if I were to ask Jo for fifty
thousand dollars to finance research into the technique of democracy, he'd turn
me down flat. Why? Because he knows that sort of thing is
dangerous. He likes speeches about
democracy. (Incidentally, Dr Mulge is
really terrific on the subject.) But he
doesn't approve of the coarse materialists who try to find out how to put those
ideals into practice. You saw how angry
he got about my poor little sun-machine.
Because, in its tiny way, it's a menace to the sort of big business he
makes his money from. And it's the same
with these other little gadgets that I've talked to him about from time to
time. Come and look, if it doesn't bore
you.'
He took
them into the house. Here was the little
electric mill, hardly larger than a coffee-machine, in which he ground his own
flour as he needed it. Here was the loom
at which he had learnt and was now teaching others to weave. Next he took them out to the shed in which,
with a few hundred dollars' worth of electrically operated tools, he was
equipped to do any kind of carpentry and even some light metalwork. Beyond the shed were the still unfinished
greenhouses; for the vegetable plots weren't adequate to supply the demands of
his transients. There they were, he
added, pointing through the increasing darkness to the lights of a row of
cabins. He could put up only a few of
them; the rest had to live in a sort of garbage-heap down in the dry bed of the
river - paying rent to Jo Stoyte for the privilege. Not the best material to work with, of
course. But such misery as theirs left
one no choice. They simply had to be
attended to. A few had come through
undemoralized; and, of these, a few could see what had to be done, what you had
to aim at. Two or three were working
with him here; and he had been able to raise money to settle two or three more
on some land near Santa Suzanna. Mere
beginning - unsatisfactory at that.
Because, obviously, you could not even start experimenting properly
until you had a full-fledged community working under the new conditions. But to set a community on its feet would
require money. A lot of money. But rich men wouldn't touch the work; they
preferred art schools at Tarzana. The
people who were interested had no money; that was one of the reasons why they
were interested. Borrowing at the
current commercial rates was dangerous.
Except in very favourable circumstances, the chances were that you'd
merely be selling yourself into slavery to a bank.
'It isn't
easy,' said Mr Propter, as they walked back to the house. 'But the great point is that, easy or not
easy, it's there, waiting to be done.
Because, after all, Pete, there is something to do.'
Mr
Propter went into the bungalow for a moment to turn out the lights, then
emerged again on to the porch. Together,
the three men walked down the path to the road.
Before them the castle was a vast black silhouette punctured by
occasional lights.
'There is
something you can do,' Mr Propter resumed; 'but only on condition that you
know what the nature of the world happens to be. If you know that the strictly human level is
the level of evil, you won't waste your time trying to produce good on that
level. Good manifests itself only on the
animal level and on the level of eternity.
Knowing that, you'll realize that the best you can do on the human level
is preventive. You can see that purely
human activities don't interfere too much with the manifestation of good on the
other levels. That's all. But politicians don't know the nature of
reality. If they did, they wouldn't be
politicians. Reactionary or
revolutionary, they're all humanists, all romantics. They live in a world of illusion, a world
that's a mere projection of their own human personalities. They act in ways which would be appropriate
if such a world as they think they live in really existed. But, unfortunately, it doesn't exist except
in their imaginations. Hence nothing
that they do is appropriate to the real world.
All their actions are the actions of lunatics, and all, as history is
there to demonstrate, are more or less completely disastrous. So much for the romantics. The realists, who have studied the nature of
the world, know that an exclusively humanistic attitude towards life is always
fatal, and that all strictly human activities must therefore be made
instrumental to animal and spiritual good.
They know, in other words, that men's business is to make the human
world safe for animals and spirits. Or
perhaps,' he added, turning to Jeremy, 'perhaps, as an Englishman, you prefer
Lloyd George's phrase to Wilson's: "A home fit for heroes to live in"
- wasn't that it? A home fit for animals
and spirits, for physiology and disinterested consciousness. At present, I'm afraid, it's profoundly unfit. The world we've made for ourselves is a world
of sick bodies and insane or criminal personalities. How shall we make this world safe for
ourselves as animals and as spirits? If
we can answer that question, we've discovered what to do.'
Mr
Propter halted at what appeared to be a wayside shrine, opened a small steel
door with a key he carried in his pocket, and, lifting the receiver of the
telephone within, announced their presence to an invisible porter, somewhere on
the other side of the moat. They walked on.
'What are
the things that make the world unsafe for animals and spirits?' Mr Propter
continued. 'Obviously greed and fear,
lust for power, hatred, anger ...'
At this
moment, a dazzling light struck them full in the face and was almost
immediately turned out.
'What in
heaven's name ...?' Jeremy began.
'Don't
worry,' said Pete. 'They only want to make sure it's us, not a set of
gangsters. It's just the searchlights.' 'Just our old friend Jo expressing his
personality,' said Mr Propter, taking Jeremy's arm. 'In other words, proclaiming to the world
that he's afraid because he's been greedy and domineering. And he's been greedy and domineering, among
other reasons, because the present system puts a premium on those
qualities. Our problem is to find a
system that will give the fewest possible opportunities for unfortunate people,
like Jo Stoyte, to realize their potentialities.'
The
bridge had swung down as they approached the moat, and now the boards rang
hollow under their feet.
'You'd
like socialism, Pete,' Mr Propter continued.
'But socialism seems to be fatally committed to centralization and
standardized urban mass production all round.
Besides, I see too many occasions for bullying there - too many
opportunities for bossy people to display their bossiness, for sluggish people
to sit back and be slaves.'
The
portcullis rose, the gates slid back to receive them.
'If you
want to make the world safe for animals and spirits, you must have a system
that reduces the amount of fear and greed and hatred and domineering to their
minimum. Which means that you must have
enough economic security to get rid at least of that source of worry. Enough personal responsibility to prevent
people from wallowing in sloth. Enough
property to protect them from being bullied by the rich, but not enough to
permit them to bully. And the same thing
with political rights and authority - enough of the first for the protection of
the many, too little of the second for domination by the few.'
'Sounds
like peasants to me,' said Pete dubiously.
'Peasants
plus small machines and power. Which
means that they're no longer peasants, except insofar as they're largely
self-sufficient.'
'And who
makes the machines? More peasants?'
'No; the
same sort of people as make them now.
What can't be made satisfactorily except by mass production methods,
obviously has to go on being made that way.
About a third of all production - that's what it seems to amount
to. The other two-thirds are more
economically produced at home or in a small workshop. The immediate, practical problem is to work
out the technique of that small-scale production. At present, all the research is going to the
discovery of new fields for mass production.'
In the
Grotto a row of twenty-five electric candles burned in perpetual adoration
before the Virgin. Above, on the
tennis-court, the second butler, two maids and the head electrician were
playing mixed doubles by the light of arc lamps.
'And do
you figure people will want to leave the cities and live the way you're telling
us, on little farms?'
'Ah, now
you're talking, Pete!' said Mr Propter approvingly. 'Frankly, then, I don't expect them to leave
the cities, any more than I expect them to stop having wars and
revolutions. All I expect is that, if I
do my work and it's reasonably good, there'll be a few people who will want to
collaborate with me. That's all.'
'But if
you're not going to get more than just a few, what's the point? Why not try to do something with the cities
and the factories, seeing that that's where most people are going to stay? Wouldn't that be more practical?'
'It
depends how one defines the word,' said Mr Propter. 'For example, you seem to think that
it's practical to help a great many people to pursue a policy which is known to
be fatal; but that it isn't practical to help a very few people to pursue a
policy which there is every reason to regard as sound. I don't agree with you.'
'But the
many are there. You've got to do
something about them.'
'You've
got to do something about them,' Mr Propter agreed. 'But at the same time there are circumstances
when you can't do anything. You can't do
anything effective about anyone if he doesn't choose or isn't able to
collaborate with you in doing the right thing.
For example, you've got to help people who are being killed off
by malaria. But in practice you can't
help them if they refuse to screen their windows and insist on taking walks
near stagnant water in the twilight.
It's exactly the same with the diseases of the body politic. You've got to help people if they're faced by
war or ruin or enslavement, if they're under the menace of sudden revolution or
slow degeneration. You've got to
help. But the fact remains,
nevertheless, that you can't help if they persist in the course of behaviour
which originally got them into their trouble.
For example, you can't preserve people from the horrors of war if they
won't give up the pleasures of nationalism.
You can't save them from slumps and depressions so long as they go on
thinking exclusively in terms of money and regarding money as the supreme
good. You can't avert revolution and enslavement if they will
identify progress with the increase of centralization and prosperity with
the intensifying of mass production. You
can't preserve them from collective madness and suicide if they persist in
paying divine honours to ideals which are merely projections of their own
personalities - in other words, if they persist in worshipping themselves
rather than God. So much for conditional
clauses. Now let's consider the actual
facts of the present situation. For our
purposes, the most significant facts are these: the inhabitants of every
civilized country are menaced; all desire passionately to be saved from
impending disaster; the overwhelming majority refuse to change the habits of
thought, feeling and action which are directly responsible for their present
plight. In other words, they can't be
helped, because they are not prepared to collaborate with any helper who proposes
a rational and realistic course of action.
In these circumstances, what ought the would-be helper to do?'
'He's got
to do something,' said Pete.
'Even if
he thereby accelerates the process of destruction?' Mr Propter smiled sadly. 'Doing for doing's sake,' he went on. 'I prefer Oscar Wilde. Bad art can't do so much harm as
ill-considered political action. Doing
good on any but the tiniest scale requires more intelligence than most people
possess. They ought to be content with
keeping out of mischief; it's easier and it doesn't have such frightful results
as trying to do good in the wrong way.
Twiddling the thumbs and having good manners are much more helpful, in
most cases, than rushing about with good intentions, doing things.'
Floodlighted,
Giambologna's nymph was still indefatigably spouting away against the velvet
background of the darkness. Electricity
and sculpture, Jeremy was thinking as he looked at her - predestined partners. The things that old Bernini could have done
with a battery of projectors! The
startling lights, the rich fantastic shadows!
The female mystics in orgasm, the conglobulated angels, the skeletons
whizzing up out of papal tombs like skyrockets, the saints in their private
hurricane of flapping draperies and wind-blown marble curls! What fun!
What splendour! What
self-parodying emphasis! What staggering
beauty! What enormous bad taste! And what a shame that the man should have had
to be content with mere daylight and tallow candles!
'No,' Mr
Propter was saying in answer to a protesting question from the young man, 'no,
I certainly wouldn't advise their abandonment.
I'd advise the constant reiteration of the truths they've been told
again and again during the past three thousand years. And, in the intervals, I'd do active work on
the technics of a better system, and active collaboration with the few who
understand what the system is and are ready to pay the price demanded for its
realization. Incidentally, the price, measured
in human terms, is enormously high.
Though, of course, much lower than the price demanded by the nature of
things from those who persist in behaving in the standard human way. Much lower than the price of war, for example
- particularly war with contemporary weapons.
Much lower than the price of economic depression and political
enslavement.'
'And what
happens,' Jeremy asked in a fluting voice, 'what happens when you've had your
war? Will the few be any better off than
the many?'
'Oddly
enough,' Mr Propter answered, 'there's just a chance they may be. For this reason. If they've learnt the technique of
self-sufficiency they'll find it easier to survive a time of anarchy than the
people who depend for their livelihood on a highly centralized and specialized
organization. You can't work for the good without incidentally preparing
yourselves for the worst.'
He
stopped speaking, and they walked on through a silence broken only by the
sound, from somewhere high overhead in the castle, of two radios tuned to
different stations. The baboons, on the
contrary, were already asleep.
CHAPTER TWELVE
In the columned Lady Chapel, with its hat-racks and
its Magnascos, its Brancusi and its Etruscan sarcophagus used as an
umbrella-stand, Jeremy Pordage began, all of a sudden, to feel himself more cheerful
and at home.
'It's as
though one were walking into the mind of a lunatic,' he said, smiling happily,
as he hung up his hat and followed the others into the great hall. 'Or, rather, an idiot,' he qualified. 'Because I suppose a lunatic's a person with
a one-track mind. Whereas this ...' - he
made a circular gesture - 'this is a no-track mind. No-track because infinity-track. It's the mind of an idiot of genius. Positively stuffed with the best that has
been thought and said.' He pronounced the
phrase with a kind of old-maidish precision that made it sound entirely
ludicrous. 'Greece, Mexico, backsides,
crucifixions, machinery, George IV, Amida Buddha, science, Christian Science,
Turkish baths - anything you like to mention.
And every item is perfectly irrelevant to every other item.' He rubbed his hands together, he twinkled
delightedly through his bifocals.
'Disquieting at first. But, do
you know? I'm beginning to enjoy
it. I find I really rather like living
inside an idiot.'
'I don't
doubt it,' said Mr Propter, matter-of-factly.
'It's a common taste.'
Jeremy
was offended. 'One wouldn't have thought
this sort of thing was very common,' he said, nodding in the direction of the
Greco.
'It
isn't,' Mr Propter agreed. 'But you can
live in an idiot-universe without going to the expense of actually constructing
it out of ferro-concrete and filling it with works of art.'
There was
a pause while the entered the lift.
'You can
live inside a cultural idiot,' Mr Propter went on. 'Inside a patchwork of mutually irrelevant
words and bits of information. Or, if
you're a lowbrow, you can live in the idiot world of the homme moyen sensuel
- the world where the irrelevances consist of newspapers and baseball, of
sex and worry, of advertising and money and halitosis and keeping up with the
Joneses. There's a hierarchy of
idiocies. Naturally, you and I prefer
the classiest variety.'
The
elevator came to a halt. Pete opened the
gate, and they stepped out into the whitewashed corridor of the sub-sub-basement.
'Nothing
like an idiot-universe if you want a quiet irresponsible life. That is, provided you can stand the idiocy,'
Mr Propter added. 'A lot of people
can't. After a time, they get tired of
their no-track world. They feel the need
of being concentrated and directed. They
want their lives to have some sense.
That's when they go communist, or join the Church of Rome, or take up
with the Oxford Group. Anything,
provided it will make them one-trackers.
And, of course, in the overwhelming majority of cases they choose the
wrong track. Inevitably. Because there are a million wrong tracks and
only one right - a million ideals, a million projections of personality, and
only one God and one beatific vision.
From no-track idiocy most of them pass on to some one-track lunacy,
generally criminal. It makes them feel
better, of course; but, pragmatically, the last state is always worse than the
first. If you don't want the only thing
worth having, my advice is: Stick to idiocy. - Is this where you work?' he went
on in another tone, as Jeremy opened the door of his vaulted study. 'And those the Hauberk Papers, I take
it. Plenty of them. The title's extinct, isn't it?'
Jeremy
nodded. 'And so's the family - or very
nearly. Nothing left but two old maids
in a haunted house without any money.'
He twinkled, uttered his little preparatory cough and, patting his bald
crown, said with an exaggerated precision.
'Decayed gentlewomen.' Exquisite
locution! It was one of his
favourites. 'And the decay must have
gone pretty far,' he added. 'Otherwise
they wouldn't have sold the papers.
They've refused all previous offers.'
'How
fortunate one is, not to belong to an ancient family!' said Mr Propter. 'All those inherited loyalties to bricks and
mortar, all those obligations to tombstones and bits of paper and painted
canvases!' He shook his head. 'What a dismal form of compulsory idolatry.'
Jeremy,
meanwhile, had crossed the room, opened a drawer and returned with a file of
papers which he handed to Mr Propter.
'Look at these.'
Mr
Propter looked. 'From Molinos!' he said
in surprise.
'I
thought that would be your cup of tea,' said Jeremy, deriving a sly pleasure
from talking about mysticism in the most absurdly inappropriate language.
Mr
Propter smiled. 'My cup of tea,' he
repeated. 'But not my favourite
blend. There was something not quite
right about poor Molinos. A strain of -
how shall I put it? - of negative sensuality.
He enjoyed suffering. Mental
suffering, the dark night of the soul - he really wallowed in it. No doubt, poor fellow, he sincerely believed
he was destroying self-will; but, without his being aware of it, he was always
turning the process of destruction into another affirmation of self-will. Which was a pity,' Mr Propter added, taking
the letters to the light, to look at them more closely. 'Because he certainly did have some
first-hand experience of reality. Which
only shows that you're never certain of getting there, even when you've come
near enough to see what sort of thing you're going to. Here's a fine sentence,' he put in
parenthetically. '"Ame a Dios,"' he read aloud, '"como
es in si y no como se lo dice y forma su imaginación."'
Jeremy
almost laughed. The coincidence that Mr
Propter should have picked on the same passage as had caught Dr Obispo's eye
that morning gave him a peculiar satisfaction.
'Pity he couldn't have read a little Kant,' he said. 'Dios en si seems to be much the same
as Ding an sich. Unknowable by
the human mind.'
'Unknowable
by the personal human mind,' Mr Propter agreed, 'because personality is
self-will, and self-will is the negation of reality, the denial of God. So far as the ordinary human personality is
concerned, Kant is perfectly right in saying that the thing in itself is unknowable. Dios en si can't be comprehended by a
consciousness dominated by an ego. But
now suppose there were some way of eliminating the ego from consciousness. If you could do this, you'd get close
to reality, you'd be in a position to comprehend Dios en si. Now, the interesting thing is that, as a
matter of brute fact, this thing can be done, has been done again and
again. Kant's blind alley is for people
who choose to remain on the human level.
If you choose to climb on to the level of eternity, the impasse
no longer exists.'
There was
a silence. Mr Propter turned over the
sheets, pausing every now and then to decipher a line or two of the fine
calligraphy. '"Tres maneras hay
de silencio,"' he read aloud after a moment. '"El primero es de palabras, el
segundo de deseos y el tercero de pensamientos." He writes nicely, don't you think? Probably that had a lot to do with his
extraordinary success. How disastrous
when a man knows how to say the wrong things in the right way! Incidentally,' he added, looking up with a
smile into Jeremy's face, 'how few great stylists have ever said any of the
right things. That's one of the troubles
about education in the humanities. The
best that has been thought and said.
Very nice. But best in which
way? Alas, only in form. The content is generally deplorable.' He turned back to the letters. After a moment, another passage caught his
attention. '"Oirá y leera el
hombre racional estas espirituales materias, pero no llegera, dice San Pablo, a
comprenderlas: Animalis homo non percipit ea quae sunt spiritus." And not merely animalis homo,' Mr
Propter commented. 'Also humanus
homo. Indeed, above all humanus
homo. And you might even add that humanus
homo non percipit ea quae sunt animalis.
Insofar as we think as strictly human beings, we fail to understand what
is below us no less than what is above.
And then there's a further trouble.
Suppose we stop thinking in a strictly human fashion; suppose we make it
possible for ourselves to have direct intuitions of the non-human realities in
which, so to speak, we're imbedded. Well
and good. But what happens when we try
to pass on the knowledge so acquired?
We're floored. The only
vocabulary at our disposal is a vocabulary primarily intended for thinking
strictly human thoughts about strictly human concerns. But the things we want to talk about
are non-human realities and non-human ways of thinking. Hence the radical inadequacy of all
statements about our animal nature and, even more, of all statements about God
or spirit, or eternity.'
Jeremy
uttered a little cough. 'I can think of
some pretty adequate statements about ...' he paused, beamed, caressed his
polished scalp; 'well, about the more intime aspects of our animal
nature,' he concluded demurely. His face
suddenly clouded; he had remembered his treasure-trove and Dr Obispo's impudent
theft.
'But what
does their adequacy depend on?' Mr Propter asked. 'Not so much on the writer's skill as the
reader's response. The direct, animal
intuitions aren't rendered by words; the words merely remind you of your
memories of similar experiences. Notus
calor is what Virgil says when he's talking about the sensations
experienced by Vulcan in the embrace of Venus.
Familiar heat. No attempt at
description or analysis; no effort to get any kind of verbal equivalence to the
facts. Just a reminder. But that reminder is enough to make the
passage one of the most voluptuous affairs in Latin poetry. Virgil left the work to his readers. And, by and large, that's what most erotic
writers are content to do. The few who
try to do the work themselves have to flounder about with metaphors and similes
and analogies. You know the sort of
stuff: fire, whirlwinds, heaven, darts.'
'"The
vale of lilies,"' Jeremy quoted.
'"And the bower of bliss."'
'Not to
mention the expense of spirit in a waste of shame,' said Mr Propter; 'and all
the other figures of speech. An endless
variety, with only one feature in common - they're all composed of words which
don't connote any aspect of the subject they're suppose to describe.'
'Saying
one think in order to mean another,' Jeremy put in. 'Isn't that one of the possible definitions
of imaginative literature?'
'Maybe,'
Mr Propter answered. 'But what chiefly
interests me at the moment is the fact that our immediate animal intuitions
have never been given any but the most summary and inadequate labels. We say "red," for example, or
"pleasant," and just leave it at that, without trying to find verbal
equivalents for the various aspects of perceiving redness or experiencing
pleasure.'
'Well,
isn't that because you can't go beyond "red" or
"pleasant"?' said Pete.
'They're just facts, ultimate facts.'
'Like
giraffes,' Jeremy added. '"There
ain't no such animal" is what the rationalist says, when he's shown its
portrait. And then in it walks, neck and
all!'
'You're
right,' said Mr Propter. 'A giraffe is
an ultimate fact. You've got to accept
it, whether you like it or not. But
accepting the giraffe doesn't prevent you from studying and describing it. And the same applies to redness or pleasure
or notus calor. They can be
analysed, and the results of the analysis can be described by means of suitable
words. But as a matter of historical
fact, this hasn't been done.'
Pete
nodded slowly. 'Why do you figure that
should be?' he asked.
'Well,'
said Mr Propter, 'I should say it's because men have always been more
interested in doing and feeling than in understanding. Always too busy making good and having
thrills and doing what's "done" and worshipping the local idols - too
busy with all this even to feel any desire to have an adequate verbal
instrument for elucidating their experiences.
Look at the languages we've inherited - incomparably effective in
rousing violent and exciting emotions; an ever-present help for those who want
to get on in the world; worse than useless for anyone who aspires to
disinterested understanding. Hence, even
on the strictly human level, the need for special impersonal languages like mathematics
and technical vocabularies of the various sciences. Wherever men have felt the wish to
understand, they've given up the traditional language and substituted for it
another special language, more precise and, above all, less contaminated with
self-interest. Now, here's a very
significant fact. Imaginative literature
deals mainly with the everyday life of men and women; and the everyday life of
men and women consists, to a large extent, of immediate animal
experiences. But the makers of imaginative
literature have never forged an impersonal, uncontaminated language for the
elucidation of immediate experiences.
They're content to use the bare, unanalysed names of experiences as mere
aids to their own and their reader's memory.
Every direct intuition is notus calor, with the connotation of
the words left open, so to speak, for each individual reader to supply
according to the nature of his or her particular experiences in the past. Simple, but not exactly scientific. But then people don't read literature in
order to understand; they read it because they want to re-live the feelings and
sensations which they found exciting in the past. Art can be a lot of things; but in actual
practice most of it is merely the mental equivalent of alcohol and cantharides.'
Mr
Propter looked down again at the close-set lines of Molinos's epistles. '"Oirá y leerá el hombre racional
estas espirituales materias,"' he read out once more. '"Pero non llegerá a
comprenderlas." He'll hear and
read these things, but he won't succeed in understanding them. And he won't succeed,' said Mr Propter,
closing the file and handing it back to Jeremy, 'he won't succeed for one of
two excellent reasons. Either he has
never seen the giraffes in question, and so, being an hombre racional,
knows quite well that there ain't no such animal. Or else he has had glimpsed of the creatures,
or has some other reason for believing in their existence, but can't understand
what the experts say about them; can't understand because of the inadequacy of
the language in which the fauna of the spiritual world is ordinarily
described. In other words, he either
hasn't had the immediate experience of eternity and so has no reason to believe
that eternity exists; or else he does believe that eternity exists, but
can't make head or tail of the language in which it's talked about by those who
had had experience of it. Furthermore,
when he wants to talk about eternity himself - and he may wish to do so, either
in order to communicate his own experiences to others or to understand them
better, from the human point of view, himself - he finds himself on the horns
of a dilemma. For either he recognizes
that the existing language is unsuitable - in which case he has only two
rational choices: to say nothing at all, or to invent a new and better
technical language of his own, a calculus of eternity, so to speak, a special
algebra of spiritual experience - and if he does invent it, nobody who hasn't
learnt it will know what he's talking about.
So much for the first horn of the dilemma. The second horn is reserved for those who
don't recognize the inadequacy of the existing language; or else who do
recognize it, but are irrationally hopeful enough to take a chance with an
instrument which they know to be worthless.
These people will write in the existing language, and their writing will
be, in consequence, more or less completely misunderstood by most of their
readers. Inevitably, because they words
they use don't correspond to the things their talking about. Most of them are words taken from the
language of everyday life.... But the language of everyday life refers almost
exclusively to strictly human affairs. What
happens when you apply words derived from that language to experiences on the
plane of the spirit, the plane of timeless experience? Obviously, you create a misunderstanding; you
say what you didn't mean to say.'
Pete
interrupted him. 'I'd like an example,
Mr Propter,' he said.
'All
right,' the other answered. 'Let's take
the commonest word in all religious literature: "love." Love on the human level means - what? Practically everything from Mother to the
Marquis de Sade.'
The name
reminded Jeremy yet again of what had happened to the Cent-Vingt Jours de
Sodome. Really it was too
insufferable! the impudence of it ...!
'We don't
even make the simple Greek distinction between erao and philo, eros
and agape. With us everything is
just love, whether it's self-sacrificing or possessive, whether it's friendship
or lust or homicidal lunacy. It's all
just love,' he repeated. 'Idiotic
word! Even on the human level it's
hopelessly ambiguous. And when you begin
using it in relation to experiences on the level of eternity - well, it's
simply disastrous. "The love of
God." "God's love for
us." "The saint's love for his
fellows." What does the word stand
for in such phrases? And in what way is
this related to what it stands for when it's applied to a young mother suckling
her baby? or to Romeo climbing into Juliet's bedroom? or to Othello as he
strangles Desdemona? or to the research worker who loves his science? or to the
patriot who's ready to die for his country - to die and, in the meantime, to
kill, steal, lie, swindle and torture for it?
Is there really anything in common between what the word stands for in
these contexts and what it stands for when one talks, let us say, of the
Buddha's love for all sentient beings?
Obviously, the answer is: No, there isn't. On the human level, the word stands for a
great many different states of mind and ways of behaving. Dissimilar in many respects, but alike at
least in this: they're all accompanied by emotional excitement and they all
contain an element of craving. Whereas
the most characteristic features of the enlightened person's experience are
serenity and disinterestedness. In other
words, the absence of excitement and the absence of craving.'
'"The
absence of excitement and the absence of craving,"' Pete said to himself,
while the image of Virginia in her yachting-cap, riding her pink scooter,
kneeling in her shorts under the arch of the grotto, swam before his inward
eye.
'Distinctions
in fact ought to be represented by distinctions in language,' Mr Propter was
saying. 'If they're not, you can't
expect to talk sense. In spite of which,
we insist on using one word to connote entirely different things. "God is love," we say. The word's the same as the one we use when we
talk about "being in love," or "loving one's children," or
"being inspired by love of country."
Consequently we tend to think that the thing we're talking about must be
more or less the same. We imagine in a
vague, reverential way, that God is composed of a kind of immensely magnified
yearning.' Mr Propter shook his
head. 'Creating God in our own image. It flatters our vanity, and of course we
prefer vanity to understanding. Hence
those confusions of language. If we
wanted to understand the word, if we wanted to think about it realistically, we
should say that we were in love, but that God was x-love. In this way, people who had never had any
first-hand experience on the level of eternity would at least be given a chance
of knowing intellectually that what happens on that level is not the same as
what happens on the strictly human level.
They'd know, because they'd seen it in print, that there was some kind
of difference between love and x-love.
Consequently, they'd have less excuse than people have today for
imagining that God was like themselves, only a bit more so on the side of
respectability and a bit less so, of course, on the other side. And, naturally, what applies to the word
"love," applies to all the other words taken over from the language
of everyday life and used to describe spiritual experience. Words like "knowledge,"
"wisdom," "power," "mind," "peace,"
"joy," "freedom," "good." They stand for certain things on the human
level. But the things that writers force
them to stand for when they describe events on the level of eternity are quite
different. Hence the use of them merely
confuses the issue. They just make it
all but impossible for anyone to know what's being talked about. And, meanwhile, you must remember that these
words from the language of everyday life aren't the only troublemakers. People who write about experiences on the
level of eternity also make use of technical phrases borrowed from various
systems of philosophy.'
'Isn't
that your algebra of spiritual experience?' said Pete. 'Isn't that the special, scientific language
you've been talking about?'
'It's an
attempt at such an algebra,' Mr Propter answered. 'But, unfortunately, a very unsuccessful
attempt. Unsuccessful because this
particular algebra is derived from the language of metaphysics - bad
metaphysics, incidentally. The people
who use it are committing themselves, whether they like it or not, to an
explanation of the facts as well as a description. An explanation of actual experiences in terms
of metaphysical entities, whose existence is purely hypothetical and can't be
demonstrated. In other words, they're
describing the facts in terms of figments of the imagination; they're
explaining the known in terms of the unknown.
Take a few examples. Here's one:
"ecstasy." It's a technical
term that refers to the soul's ability to stand outside the body - and of
course it carries the further implication that we know what the soul is and how
it's related to the body and the rest of
the universe. Or take another instance,
a technical term that is essential to the Catholic theory of mysticism:
"infused contemplation." Here
the implication is that there's somebody outside us who pours a certain kind of
psychological experience into our minds.
The further implication is that we know who that somebody is. Or consider even "union with
God." What it means depends on the
upbringing of the speaker. It may mean
"union with the Jehovah of the Old Testament." Or it may mean "union with the personal
deity of orthodox Christianity." It
may mean what it probably would have meant, say, to Eckhart, "union with
the impersonal Godhead of which the God of orthodoxy is an aspect and a
particular limitation." Similarly,
if you were an Indian, it may mean "union with Isvara" or "union
with Brahman." In every case, the
term implies a previous knowledge about the nature of things which are either
completely unknowable, or at best only to be inferred from the nature of the
experiences which the term is supposed to describe. So there,' Mr Propter concluded, 'you have
the second horn of the dilemma - the horn on which all those who use the
current religious vocabulary to describe their experiences on the level of
eternity inevitably impale themselves.'
'And the
way between the horns?' Jeremy questioned.
'Isn't it the way of the professional psychologists who have written
about mysticism? They've evolved a
pretty sensible language. You haven't
mentioned them.'
'I
haven't mentioned them,' said Mr Propter, 'for the same reason as in talking
about beauty I shouldn't mention professional aestheticians who had never been
inside a picture gallery.'
'You
mean, they don't know what they're talking about?'
Mr
Propter smiled. 'I'd put it another
way,' he said. 'They talk about what
they know. But what they know isn't
worth talking about. For what they know
is only the literature of mysticism - not the experience.'
'Then
there's no way between the horns,' Jeremy concluded. His eyes twinkled behind his spectacles; he
smiled like a child, taking a sly triumph in some small consummation of
naughtiness. 'What fun it is when there
isn't a way between!' he went on. 'It
makes the world seem so deliciously cosy, when all the issues are barred and
there's nowhere to go to with all your brass bands and shining armour. Onward Christian soldiers! Forward, the Light Brigade! Excelsior!
And all the time you're just going round and round - head to tail,
follow-my-fuehrer - like Fabre's caterpillars.
That really gives me a great deal of pleasure!'
This time
Mr Propter laughed outright. 'I'm sorry
to have to disappoint you,' he said.
'But unfortunately there is a way between the horns. The practical way. You can go and find out what it means for
yourself, by first-hand experience. Just
as you can find out what El Greco's "Crucifixion of St Peter" looks
like by taking the elevator and going up to the hall. Only, in this case, I'm afraid, there isn't
any elevator. You have to go up on your
own legs. And make no mistakes,' he
added, turning to Pete, 'there's an awful lot of stairs.'
Dr Obispo
straightened himself up, took the tubes of the stethoscope out of his ears and
stowed the instrument away in his pocket along with the Cent-Vingt Jours de
Sodome.
'Anything
bad?' Mr Stoyte asked anxiously.
Dr Obispo
shook his head and gave him a smile of reassurance. 'No influenza anyhow,' he said. 'Just a slight intensification of the
bronchial condition. I'll give you
something for it tonight before you go to bed.'
Mr
Stoyte's face relaxed into cheerfulness.
'Glad it was only a false alarm,' he said, and turned away to get his
clothes which were lying in a heap on the sofa, under the Watteau.
From her
seat at the soda-counter, Virginia let out a whoop of triumph. 'Isn't that just swell!' she cried. Then, in another, graver tone: 'You know,
Uncle Jo,' she added, 'he'd got me panicked about that cough of yours. Panicked,' she repeated.
Uncle Jo
grinned triumphantly and slapped his chest so hard that its hairy, almost
female accumulation of flesh shivered like jellies under the blow. 'Nothing wrong we me,' he boasted.
Virginia
watched him over the top of her glass, as he got into his shirt and knotted his
tie. The expression on her innocent face
was one of perfect serenity. But behind
those limpid blue eyes her mind was simmering with activity. 'Was that a close call!' she kept saying to
herself. 'Gee, was it close!' At the recollection of that sudden violent
start at the sound of the elevator gate being opened, of that wild scramble as
the footsteps approached along the corridor, she felt herself tingling with a
delicious mixture of fear and amusement, of apprehension and triumph. It was the sensation she used to have as a
child, playing hide-and-seek in the dark.
A close call! And hadn't Sig been
wonderful! What presence of mind! And that stethoscope thing he pulled out of
his pocket - what a brainwave! That had
saved the situation. Because, without
the stethoscope, Uncle Jo would have put on one of his jealous acts. Thought what right he had to be jealous,
Virginia went on to reflect, with a strong sense of injury, she really didn't
know. Seeing that nothing had happened
except just a little reading aloud. And,
anyhow, why shouldn't a girl be allowed to read that sort of thing if she
wanted to? Especially if it was in
French. And, besides, who was Uncle Jo
to be prudish, she'd like to know?
Getting mad with people only for telling you a funny story, when just
what he himself was doing all the time - and then expecting you to think
like Louisa M. Alcott, and thinking you ought to be protected from hearing so
much as a dirty word! And the way he
simply wouldn't allow her to tell the truth about herself, even if she had
wanted to. Making a build-up of her as
somebody quite different from what she really was. Acting almost as though she were Daisy Mae in
the comic strip and he a sort of Little Abner rescuing her in the nick of
time. Though, of course, she had to
admit that it had happened at least once before he came along, because if it
hadn't, there'd have been no excuse for him. It had happened, but quite unwillingly - you
know, practically a rape - or else some fellow taking advantage of her being so
dumb and innocent - at Congo Club with nothing on but a G-string and some
talcum powder. And naturally she was
always supposed to have hated it; crying her eyes out all the time until Uncle
Jo came along; and then everything was different. But in that case, it now suddenly occurred to
Virginia, if that was the way he thought about her, what the hell did he mean
by coming home like this at seven-fifteen, when he'd told her he wouldn't be
back till eight? The old
double-crosser! Was he trying to spy on
her? Because, if so, she wasn't going to
stand for it; if so, then it just served him right that that was what Sig had
been reading to her. He was just getting
what he deserved for snooping around, trying to catch her doing something that
wasn't right. Well, if that was
how he was going to act, she'd tell Sig to come every day and read another
chapter. Though how on earth the man who
wrote the book was going to keep it up for a hundred and twenty days she really
couldn't imagine. Considering what had
happened already in the first week - and here was she, figuring that there
wasn't anything she didn't know! Well,
one lived and learned. Though there was
some of it she really hadn't in the least wanted to learn. Things that made you feel sick to your
stomach. Horrible! As bad as having babies! (She shuddered.) Not that there weren't a lot of funny things
in the book too. The piece she had made
Sig read over again - that was grand, that had given her a real kick. And that other bit where the girl ...
'Well,
Baby,' said Mr Stoyte, as he did up the last button of his waistcoat. 'You're not saying much, are you? A penny for your thoughts.'
Virginia
raised that childishly short upper lip in a smile that made his heart melt with
tenderness and desire. 'I was thinking
about you, Uncle Jo,' she said.
CHAPTER THIRTEEN
If
thou appear untouch'd by solemn thought,
Thy
nature is not therefore less divine;
Thou
liest in Abraham's bosom all the year;
And
worship'st at the Temple's inner shrine,
God
being with thee when we know it not.
'And very nice too,' Jeremy said aloud. Transparent was the word, he
reflected. The meaning was there like a
fly in amber. Or, rather, there was no
fly; there was only the amber; and the amber was the meaning. He looked at his watch. Three minutes to midnight. He closed his Wordsworth - and to think, he
went on bitterly to remind himself, to think that he might have been refreshing
his memory of Félicia! - laid the volume down on the table beside his
bed and took off his glasses. Deprived
of their six and a half diopters of correction, his eyes were instantly reduced
to a state of physiological despair.
Curved crystal had become their element; unspectacled, they were like a
pair of jellied sea-creatures suddenly taken out of water. Then the light went out; and it was as though
the poor things had been mercifully dropped, for safe keeping, into an
aquarium.
Jeremy
stretched under the bedclothes and yawned.
What a day! But now, thank God,
the paradise of bed. The Blessed Damozel
leaned out from the gold bed of heaven.
But these sheets were cotton ones, not linen; which was really a bit
discreditable in a house like this! A
house full of Rubenses and Grecos - and your sheets were cotton! But that 'Crucifixion of St Peter' - what a
really staggering machine! At least as
good as the 'Assumption' at Toledo.
Which had probably been blown up by this time, incidentally. Just to demonstrate what happened when people
took things too seriously. Not but that,
he went on to reflect, there wasn't something rather impressive about that old
Propter-Object. (For that was what he
had decided to call the man in his own mind and when he wrote to his mother:
the Propter-Object.) A bit of an Ancient
Mariner, perhaps. The wedding guest, he
beat his breast on occasions; ought perhaps to have beaten it more often than
he had done, seeing what a frightful subversion of all the common decencies
and, a fortioro, the common indecencies (such as Félicia, such as
every other Friday afternoon in Maida Vale) the creature was inculcating. Not without a considerable persuasiveness,
damn his glittering eyes! For this
particular Mariner not only held you with that eye of his; he was also and
simultaneously the loud bassoon you wanted to hear. One listened without reluctance - though, of
course, one had no intention of permitting one's own particular little structures
of decencies and indecencies to be subverted.
One was not going to allow religion (of all things!) to invade the
sanctities of private life. An
Englishman's home is his castle; and, curiously enough, an American's castle,
as he had discovered after the first shock began to wear off, was turning out
to be this particular Englishman's home.
His spiritual home. Because it
was the embodiment of an imbecile's no-track mind. Because there were no issues and nothing led
anywhere and the dilemmas had an infinity of horns and you went round and
round, like Fabre's caterpillars, in a closed universe of utter cosiness -
round and round among the Hauberk Papers, from St Peter to La Petite Morphil to
Giambologna to the gilded Bodhisattvas in the cellar to the baboons to the
Marquis de Sade to St François de Sales to Félicia and round again in due
course to St Peter. Round and round,
like caterpillars inside the mind of an imbecile; round and round in an
infinite cosiness of issueless thoughts and feelings and actions, of
hermetically bottled art and learning, of culture for its own sake, of
self-sufficient little decencies and indecencies, of impassable dilemmas and
moral questions sufficiently answered by the circumambient idiocy.
Round and
round, round and round, from Peter's feet to Morphil's little buttocks to the
baboon's, from the beautiful Chinese spiral of the folds in the Buddha's robe
to the humming-bird drinking in mid-air to Peter's feet again with the nails in
them ... His drowsiness darkened into sleep.
In
another room on the same floor of the donjon Pete Boone was not even trying to
get to sleep; he was trying, on the contrary, to figure things out. To figure out Virginia and anti-fascism. It wasn't easy. Because, if Mr Propter was right, then you'd
have to start thinking quite differently about almost everything. 'Disinterested quest for truth' - that was
what you said (if you were ever forced to say anything so embarrassing about
why you were a biologist). And in the
case of socialism it was 'humanity,' it was 'progress' - and, of course, that
linked up with biology again: happiness and progress through science as well as
socialism. And while happiness and
progress were on the way there was loyalty to the cause. He remembered a piece about loyalty by Josiah
Royce, a piece he had had to read in his sophomore year at college. Something about all loyal people grasping in
their own way some form of religious truth - winning some kind of genuine
religious insight. It had made a big
impression on him at the time. He had
just lost his faith in that Blood-of-the-Lamb business he'd been brought up in,
and this had come as a kind of reassurance, had made him feel that, after all,
he was religious even if he didn't go to church any more - religious
because he was loyal. Loyal to causes, loyal
to friends. He had been religious, it
had always seemed to him, over there in Spain.
Religious, again, when he felt that way about Virginia. And yet, if Mr Propter was right, old Royce's
ideas about loyalty were all wrong.
Being loyal didn't of itself give you religious insight. On the contrary, it might prevent you from
having insight - indeed, was absolutely certain to prevent you, if you gave
your loyalty to anything less than the highest cause of all; and the highest
cause of all (if Mr Propter was right) was almost terrible in its fairness and
strangeness. Almost terrible; and yet
the more he thought about it, the more dubious he felt about everything
else. Perhaps it really was the
highest. But if it was, then socialism
wasn't enough, because humanity wasn't enough.
Because the greatest happiness didn't happen to be in the place where
people had thought it was, because you couldn't make it come by doing things in
the sort of fields you worked in if you were a social reformer. The best you could do in those fields was to
make it easier for people to go on to where the greatest happiness could be
had. And, of course, what applied to
socialism would apply to biology or any other science, if you thought of it as
a means to progress. Because, if Mr Propter was right, then what people called
progress wasn't it progress. That is, it
wouldn't be progress unless it had made it easier for people to go on to where
the greatest happiness actually was.
Easier, in other words, to be loyal to the highest cause of all. And, obviously, if that was your standard,
you had to think twice about using progress as a justification for
science. And then there was that
disinterested quest for truth. But
again, if Mr Propter was right, biology and the rest were the disinterested
quest for only one aspect of truth. But
a half-truth was a falsehood, and it remained a falsehood even when you'd told
it in the belief that it was the whole truth.
So it looked as though that justification wouldn't do either - or
at any rate as though it wouldn't do unless you were at the same time
disinterestedly trying to discover the other aspect of truth, the aspect you
were looking for when you gave your loyalty to the highest cause of all. And meanwhile what about Virginia, he asked
himself in mounting anguish, what about Virginia? For, if Mr Propter were right, then even
Virginia wasn't enough, even Virginia might actually be an obstacle to prevent
him from giving his loyalty to the highest cause of all. Even those eyes and her innocence and that
utterly adorable mouth; even what he felt about her; even love itself, even the
best kind of love (for he could honestly say that he hated the other kind -
that dreadful brothel in Barcelona, for example, and here, at home, those huggings
after the third or fourth cocktail, those gropings by the roadside in a parked
car) - yes, even the best kind of love might be inadequate, might actually be
worse than inadequate. 'I could not love
thee, dear, so much, loved I not something or other more.' Hitherto, something or other had been his
biology, his socialism. But now these
had turned out to be inadequate, or even, taken as ends in themselves, worse
than inadequate. No loyalty was good in
itself, or brought religious insight except loyalty to the highest cause of
all. 'I could not love thee, dear, so
much, loved I not the highest cause all the more.' But the question, the agonizing question, was
this: Could you love the highest cause at all and go on feeling as you did
about Virginia? The worst love was
obviously incompatible with loyalty to the highest cause of all. Obviously so: because the worst love was just
being loyal to your own physiology, whereas, if Mr Propter was right, you
couldn't be loyal to the highest cause of all without denying such loyalties to
yourself. But was the best love so
fundamentally different, after all, from the worst? The worst was being loyal to your physiology. It was hateful to admit it; but so too was
the best: being loyal to your physiology and at the same time (which was its
distinguishing mark) loyal also to your higher feelings - to that empty ache of
longing, to that infinity of tenderness, to that adoration, that happiness,
those pains, that sense of solitude, that longing for identity. You were loyal to these, and being loyal to
these was the definition of the best kind of love, of what people called
romance and praised as the most wonderful thing in life. But being loyal to these was being loyal to
yourself; and you couldn't be loyal to yourself and loyal at the same time to
the highest cause of all. The practical
conclusion was obvious. But Pete refused
to draw it. Those eyes were blue and
limpid, that mouth adorable in its innocence.
And then, how sweet she was, how beautifully thoughtful! He remembered the conversation they had had
on the way into dinner. He had asked her
how her headache was. 'Don't talk about
it,' she had whispered; 'it might upset Uncle Jo. Doc's been going over him with his
stethoscope; doesn't think he's so good this evening. I don't want to have him worrying about me. And anyhow, what is a headache?' Not only beautiful, not only innocent and
sweet, but brave too, and unselfish. And
how adorable she had been to him all the evening, asking him about his work, telling
him about her home in Oregon, making him talk about his home down in El
Paso. In the end, Mr Stoyte had come and
sat down beside them - in silence, and his face black as thunder. Pete had glanced enquiringly at Virginia, and
she had given him a look that said, 'Please go,' and another when he rose to
say goodnight, so pleasingly apologetic, so full of gratitude, so
understanding, so sweet and affectionate, that the recollection of it was
enough to bring the tears into his eyes.
Lying there in the darkness, he cried with happiness.
The niche
in the wall between the windows in Virginia's bedroom had been intended, no
doubt, for a bookshelf. But Virginia was
not very keen on books; the recess had been fitted up, instead, as a little
shrine. You drew back a pair of short
white velvet curtains (everything in the room was white), and there, in a bower
of artificial flowers, dressed in real silk clothes, with the cutest little
gold crown on her head and six strings of seed pearls round her neck, stood Our
Lady, brilliantly illuminated by an ingenious system of concealed electric
bulbs. Barefooted and in white satin
pyjamas, Virginia was kneeling before this sacred doll's house, saying her
evening prayers. Our Lady, it seemed to
her, was looking particularly sweet and kind tonight. Tomorrow, she decided, while her lips
pronounced the formulas of praise and supplications, tomorrow morning, first
thing, she'd go right down to the sewing-room and get one of the girls to help
her make a new mantle for Our Lady out of that lovely piece of blue brocade she
had bought last week at the junk shop in Glendale. A blue brocade mantle, fastened in front with
a gold button - or, better still, with a little gold cord that you could tie in
a bow, with the ends hanging down, almost to Our Lady's feet. Oh, that would be just gorgeous! She wished it were morning so that she could
start right away.
The last
prayer had been said; Virginia crossed herself and rose from her knees. Happening to look down as she did so, she saw
to her horror that some of the cyclamen-coloured varnish had scaled off the
nails of the second and third toes of her left foot. A minute later she was squatting on the floor
beside the bed, the right leg outstretched, the other foot drawn across it,
making ready to repair the damage. An
open bottle stood beside her; she held a small paintbrush in her hand, and a
horribly industrial aura of acetone had enveloped the Schiaparelli 'Shocking'
with which her body was impregnated. She
started to work, and as she bent forward, two strands of auburn hair broke
loose from their curly pattern and fell across her forehead. Under frowning brows, the large blue eyes
intently stared. To aid concentration,
the tip of a pink tongue was held between the teeth. 'Hell!' she suddenly said aloud, as the
little brush made a false stroke. Then,
immediately, the teeth clamped down again.
Interrupting
her work to allow the first coat of varnish to dry, she shifted her scrutiny
from the toes to the calf and shin of her left leg. The hairs were beginning to grow again, she
noticed with annoyance; it would soon be time for another of those wax
treatments. Still pensively caressing
the leg, she let her mind travel back over the events of the day. The memory of that close call with Uncle Jo
still gave her shivers of apprehensive excitement. Then she thought of Sig with his stethoscope,
and the upper lip lifted ravishingly in a smile of amusement. And then there was that book, which it served
Uncle Jo right that she should have had Sig read to her. And Sig getting fresh with her between the
chapters and making passes: that also served Uncle Jo right for trying to spy
on her. She remembered how mad she had
got at Sig. Not so much for what he
actually did; for besides serving Uncle Jo right (of course it was only afterwards
that she discovered quite how right it served him), what he actually did had
been rather thrilling than otherwise; because, after all, Sig was terribly
attractive and in those ways Uncle Jo didn't hardly count - in fact, you might
almost say that he counted the other way; in the red, so to speak; counted less
than nobody, so that anybody else who was attractive seemed still more
attractive when Uncle Jo had been around.
No, it wasn't what he actually did that had made her mad at him. It was the way he did it. Laughing at her, like that. She didn't mind a bit of kidding at ordinary
times. But kidding while he was actually
making passes - that was treating her like she was a tart on Main Street. No romance, or anything; just that sniggering
sort of laugh and a lot of dirty cracks.
Maybe it was sophisticated; but she didn't like it. And didn't he see that it was just plain dumb
to act that way? Because, after all,
when you'd been reading that book with someone so attractive as Sig - well, you
felt you'd like a bit of romance. Real
romance, like in the pictures, with moonlight, and swing music, or perhaps a
torch singer (because it was nice to feel sad when you were happy), and a boy
saying lovely things to you, and a lot of kissing, and at the end of it, almost
without your knowing it, almost as if it weren't happening to you, so that you
never felt there was anything wrong, anything that Our Lady would really mind
... Virginia sighed deeply and shut her eyes; her face took on an expression of
seraphic tranquillity. Then she sighed
again, shook her head and frowned.
Instead of that, she was thinking angrily, instead of that, Sig had to
go and spoil it all by acting hard-boiled and sophisticated. It just shot all the romance to pieces and
made you feel mad at him. And what was
the sense in that? Virginia concluded resentfully. What was the sense in that, either from his
point of view or from hers?
The first
coat of varnish seemed to be dry.
Bending over her foot, she blew on her toes for a little, then started
to apply the second coat. Behind her,
all of a sudden, the door of the bedroom was opened and as gently closed again.
'Uncle
Jo?' she said enquiringly and with a note of surprise in her voice, but without
looking up from her enamelling.
There was
no answer, only the sound of an approach across the room.
'Uncle
Jo?' she repeated and, this time, interrupted the painting of her toes to turn
around.
Dr Obispo
was standing over her. 'Sig!' Her voice dropped to a whisper. 'What are you doing?'
Dr Obispo
smiled his smile of ironic admiration, of intense and at the same time amused
and mocking concupiscence. 'I thought we
might go on with our French lesson,' he said.
'You're
crazy!' She looked apprehensively
towards the door. 'He's just across the
hall. He might come in....'
Dr
Obispo's smile broadened to a grin.
'Don't worry about Uncle Jo,' he said.
'He'd
kill you if he found you here.'
'He won't
find me here,' Dr Obispo answered. 'I
gave him a capsule of Nembutal before he went to bed. He'll sleep through the Last Trump.'
'I think
you're awful!' said Virginia emphatically; but she couldn't help laughing,
partly out of relief and partly because it really was rather funny to think of
Uncle Jo snoring away next door while Sig read her that stuff.
Dr Obispo
pulled the Book of Common Prayer out of his pocket.. 'Don't let me interrupt your labours,' he
said with the parody of chivalrous politeness.
'"A woman's work is never done." Just go on as though I weren't there. I'll find the place and start reading.' Smiling at her with imperturbable impudence,
he sat down on the edge of the rococo bed and turned over the pages of the
book.
Virginia
opened her mouth to speak; then, catching hold of her left foot, closed it
again under the compulsion of a need even more urgent than that of telling him
exactly where he got off. The varnish
was drying in lumps; her toes would look just awful if she didn't go on with
them at once. Hastily dipping her little
brush in the bottle of acetone enamel, she started painting again with the
focused intensity of a Van Eyck at work on the microscopic details of the
'Adoration of the Lamb.'
Dr Obispo
looked up from the book. 'I admired the
way you acted with Pete this evening,' he said.
'Flirting with him all through dinner, so that you got the old man
hopping jealous of him. That was
masterly. Or should one say mistressly?'
Virginia
released her tongue to say emphatically, 'Pete's a nice boy.'
'But dumb,'
Dr Obispo qualified, as he sprawled with conscious elegance and a maddening
insolent assumption of being at home across the bed.
'Otherwise
he wouldn't be in love with you the way he is.'
He uttered a snort of laughter.
'The poor chump thinks you're an angel, a heavenly little angel,
complete with wings, harp and genuine eighteen-carat, fully jewelled,
Swiss-made virginity. Well, if that
isn't being dumb ...'
'You just
wait till I get time for you,' said Virginia menacingly, but without looking
up; for she had reached a critical phase in the execution of her work of art.
Dr Obispo
ignored the remark. 'I used to
underestimate the value of an education in the humanities,' he said after a
little silence. 'Now, I make that
mistake no longer.' In a tone of deep
solemnity, a tone, one might imagine, like Whittier's in a reading from his own
works. 'The lessons of great
literature!' he went on. 'The deep
truths! The gems of wisdom!'
'Oh, shut
up!' said Virginia.
'When I
think what I owe Dante and Goethe,' said Dr Obispo in the same prophetic
style. 'Take the case of Paolo reading
aloud to Francesca. With the most
fruitful results, if you remember. "Noi
leggevamo un giorno, per diletto, di Lancilotto, come amor lo strinse. Soli eravamo e senz' alcun sospetto. Senz' alcun sospetto,"' Dr Obispo
repeated with emphasis, looking, as he did so, at one of the engravings in the Cent-Vingt
Jours. 'Not the smallest suspicion,
mark you, of what was going to happen.'
'Hell!'
said Virginia, who had made another slip.
'No, not
even a suspicion of hell,' Dr Obispo insisted.
'Though, of course, they ought to have been on the look-out for it. They ought to have had the elementary
prudence to guard against being sent there by the accident of sudden
death. A few simple precautions, and
they could have made the best of both
worlds. Could have had their fun while
the brother was out of the way and, when the time for having fun was over,
could have repented and died in the odour of sanctity. But then it must be admitted that they hadn't
the advantage of reading Goethe's Faust.
They hadn't learnt that inconvenient relatives could be given
sleeping-draughts. And even if they had
learnt, they wouldn't have been able to go to the drugstore and buy a bottle of
Nembutal. Which shows that education in
the humanities isn't enough; there must also be education in science. Dante and Goethe to teach you what to do. And the professor of pharmacology to show you
how to put the old buzzard into a coma with a pinch of barbiturate.'
The toes
were finished. Still holding her left
foot, so as to keep it from any damaging contact until the varnish should be
entirely dry, Virginia turned on her visitor.
'I won't have you calling him an old buzzard,' she said hotly.
'Well, shall
we say "bastard"? Dr Obispo suggested.
'He's a
better man than you'll ever be!' Virginia cried; and her voice had the ring of
sincerity. 'I think he's wonderful.'
'You
think he's wonderful,' Dr Obispo repeated.
'But all the same, in about fifteen minutes you'll be sleeping with
me.' He laughed as he spoke and, leaning
forward from his place on the bed, caught her two arms from behind, a little
below the shoulders. 'Look out for your
toes,' he said, as Virginia cried out and tried to wrench herself away from
him.
The fear
of ruining her masterpiece made her check the movement before it was more than
barely initiated. Dr Obispo took
advantage of her hesitation to stoop down, through the aura of acetone towards
the nape of that delicious neck, towards the perfume of 'Shocking,' towards a
firm warmth against the mouth, a touch of hair like silk upon the cheeks. Swearing, Virginia furiously jerked her head
away. But a fine tingling of agreeable
sensation was running parallel, so to speak, with her indignation, was
incorporating itself in it.
This
time, Dr Obispo kissed her behind the ear.
'Shall I tell you,' he whispered, 'what I'm going to do to you?' She answered by calling him a lousy ape-man. But he told her all the same, in considerable
detail.
Less than
fifteen minutes had elapsed when Virginia opened her eyes and, across the now
darkened room, caught sight of Our Lady smiling benignantly from among the
flowers of her illuminated doll's house.
With a cry of dismay she jumped up and, without waiting to put on any
clothes, ran to the shrine and drew the curtains. The light went out automatically. Stretching out her hands in the thick
darkness, she groped her way cautiously back to bed.
PART TWO
CHAPTER ONE
'Again, no dearth of news,' Jeremy wrote to his mother
three weeks later. 'News of every kind
and from all the centuries. Here's a bit
of news, to begin with, about the Second Earl.
In the intervals of losing battles for Charles I, the Second Earl was a
poet. A bad poet, of course (for the
chances are always several thousands to one against any given poet being good),
but with occasional involuntary deviations into charm. What about this, for example, which I found
in manuscript only yesterday.
One
taper burns, but 'tis too much'
Our
loves demand complete eclipse.
Let
sight give place to amorous touch,
And
candle-light to limbs and lips!
Rather pretty, don't you think? But, alas, almost the only nugget so far
unearthed from the alluvium. If only the
rest were silence! But that's the
trouble with poets, good no less than bad.
They will not keep their traps shut, as we say in the Western
hemisphere. What joy if the rest of
Wordsworth had been silence, the rest of Coleridge, the rest of Shelley!
'Meanwhile,
the Fifth Earl sprang a surprise on me yesterday in the form of a notebook full
of miscellaneous jottings. I have only
just started on them (for I mustn't spend all my time on any one item till I
have the whole collection unpacked and roughly catalogued); but the fragments
I've read are decidedly appetizing. I
found this on the first page: "Lord Chesterfield writes to his son that a
Gentleman never speaks to his footman, nor even the beggar in the street, d'un
ton brusque, but 'corrects the one coolly and refuses the other with
humanity....' His lordship should have added that there is an Art by which such
coolness may be rendered no less formidable than Anger and such humanity more
wounding than Insult.
'"Furthermore,
footmen and beggars are not the only objects on whom this Art may be
exercised. His lordship has been
ungallant enough in this instance to forget the Sex, for there is also an Art
of coolly outraging a devoted female, and of abusing her Person, with all the bienséance
befitting the most accomplished Gentleman."
'Not a
bad beginning! I will keep you posted of
any subsequent discoveries in this field.
'Meanwhile,
contemporary news is odd, confused and a bit disagreeable. To begin with, Uncle Jo is chronically glum
and ill-tempered these days. I suspect
the green-eyed monster; for the blue-eyed monster (in other words, Miss
Maunciple, the Baby) has been rolling them, for some time now, in the direction
of young Pete. Whether she rolls more
than the eyes, I don't know; but suspect the fact; for she has that inward,
dreamy look, that far-away sleepwalker's expression, which one often remarks on
the faces of young ladies who have been doing a lot of strenuous
love-making. You know the expression I
mean: exquisitely spiritual and pre-Raphaelitish. One has only to look at such a fact to know
that God Exists. The one incongruous feature in the present
instance is the costume. A
pre-Rephaelite expression demands pre-Raphaelite clothes: long sleeves, square
yokes, yards and yards of Liberty velveteen.
When you see it, as I did today, in combination with white shorts, a
bandana and a cowboy hat, you're disturbed, you're all put out. Meanwhile, in defence of Baby's Honour, I
must insist that all this is mere hypothesis and guesswork. It may be, of course, that this new,
spiritual expression of hers is not the result of amorous fatigue. For all I know to the contrary, Baby may have
been converted by the teachings of the Propter-Object and is now walking about
in a state of perpetual samadhi.
On the other hand, I do see her giving the glad eye to Pete. What's more, Uncle Jo exhibits all the
symptoms of being suspicious of them and extremely cross with everybody
else. With me among others, of
course. Perhaps even more with me than
with others, because I happen to have read more books than the rest and am
therefore more of a symbol of Culture.
And Culture, of course, is a thing for which he has positively a Tartar's
hatred. Only, unlike the Tartars, he
doesn't want to burn the monuments of Culture, he wants to buy them up. He expresses his superiority to talent and
education by means of possession rather than destruction; by hiring and then
insulting the talented and educated rather than by killing them. (Though perhaps he would kill them if he had
the Tartar's opportunities and power.)
All this means that, when I am not in bed or safely underground with the
Hauberks, I spend most of my time grinning and bearing, thinking of Jelly-Belly
and my nice salary, in order not to think too much of Uncle Jo's bad
manners. It's all very unpleasant; but
fortunately not unbearable - and the Hauberks are an immense consolation and
compensation.
'So much
for the erotic and cultural fronts. On
the scientific front, the news is that we're all perceptibly nearer to living
as long as crocodiles. At the time of
writing, I haven't decided whether I really want to live as long as a
crocodile.' (With the penning of the
second 'crocodile,' Jeremy was seized by a sudden qualm. His mother would be seventy-seven in
August. Under that urbanity of hers,
under the crackled glaze of the admirable conversation, there was a passionate
greed for life. She would talk
matter-of-factly enough about her own approaching extinction; she would make
little jokes about her death and funeral.
But behind the talk and the little jokes there lurked, as Jeremy knew, a
fierce determination to hold on to what was left, to go on doing what she had
always done, in the teeth of death, in defiance of old age. This talk of crocodiles might give pain; this
expression of doubt as to the desirability of prolonging life might be
interpreted as an unfavourable criticism.
Jeremy took a new sheet of paper and started the paragraph afresh.)
'So much
for the erotic and cultural fronts,' he wrote.
'On the scientific front, rien de nouveau, except that the Obispo
is being more bumptious than ever; which isn't news, because he's always more
bumptious than ever. Not one of my
favourite characters, I'm afraid: though not unamusing when one feels inclined
for a few moments of ribaldry.
Longevity, it appears, is making headway. Old Parr and the Countess of Desmond are on
the march.
'And what
of the religious front? Well, our
Propter-Object has given up his attempts at edification, at any rate so far as
I'm concerned. Thank heaven! for when he
dismounts from his hobby-horse, what excellent company he is! A mind full of all kinds of oddments; and the
oddments are pigeonholed in apple-pie order.
One rather envies him his intellectual coherence; but consoles oneself
by thinking that, if one had them, they'd spoil one's own particular little
trick. When one has a gift for standing
gracefully on one's head, one is foolish and ungrateful to envy the
Marathon-runner. A funny little literary
article in the hand is worth at least three Critiques of Pure Reason in the
bush.
'My final
item is from the home front and refers to your last letter from Grasse. What a feast!
Your account of Mme de Villemomble was really Proustian. And as for the description of your drive to
Cap d'Ail and your day with what remains of the Princess and ce pauvre
Hunyadi - well, all I can say is that it was worthy of Murasaki: the
essence of all tragedy refined to a couple of tablespoonfuls of amber-coloured
tea in a porcelain cup no bigger than a magnolia flower. What an admirable lesson in the art of
literary chastity! My own tendencies -
only in the world of letters, I am thankful to say - are towards a certain
exhibitionism. This vestal prose of
yours puts me to shame.
'Well,
there is nothing more to say, as I used to write when I was at school - very
large, do you remember? in an effort to make the words fill up half a page of
notepaper. There is nothing more to say,
except, of course, the unsayable, which I leave unsaid because you know it
already.'
Jeremy
sealed up his letter, addressed it - to The Araucarias, for his mother would be
back from Grasse by the time it had crossed the Atlantic - and slipped the
envelope into his pocket. All around him
the Hauberk Papers clamoured for his attention; but for some time he remained
idle. His elbow on the desk, in an
attitude of prayer, he meditatively scratched his head; scratched it with both
hands where little spots had formed the dry scabs at the roots of the hair that
still remained to him, scabs which it was an exquisite pleasure to prise up
with the fingernails and carefully detach.
He was thinking of his mother and how curious it was, after all, that
one should have read all the Freudian literature about the Oedipus business,
all the novels, from Sons and Lovers downwards, about the dangers of too
much filial devotion, the menace of excessive maternal love - that one should
have read them all, and still, with one's eyes open, go on being what one was:
the victim of a greedy, possessive mother.
And perhaps even odder was the fact that this possessive mother had also
read all the relevant literature and was also perfectly aware of what she was
and what she had done to her son. And
yet she too went on being and doing what she had always been and done, just as
he did, and with eyes no less open than his own. (There! the scab under the right hand had
come loose. He pulled it out through the
thick tufted hair above his ears and, as he looked at the tiny desiccated shred
of tissue, was suddenly reminded of the baboons. But, after all, why not? The most certain and abiding pleasures are
the tiniest, the simplest, the rudimentarily animal - the pleasures of lying in
a hot bath, for example, or under the bedclothes, between walking and sleeping,
in the morning; the pleasure of answering the calls of nature, the pleasure of
being rubbed by a good masseur, the pleasure finally of scratching when one
itched. Why be ashamed? He dropped the scab into the wastepaper
basket and continued to scratch with the left hand.)
Nothing
like self-knowledge, he reflected. To
know why you do a thing that is wrong or stupid is to have an excuse for going
on doing it. Justification by psycho-analysis
- the modern substitute for
justification by faith. You know
the distant causes which made you a sadist or a money-grubber, a
mother-worshipper or a son-cannibal; therefore you are completely justified in
continuing to be a son-cannibal, mother-worshipper, money-grubber or
sadist. No wonder if whole generations
had risen up to bless the name of Freud!
Well, that was how he and his mother managed things. 'We bloodsucking matriarchs!' Mrs Pordage
used to say to herself - in the presence of the Rector, what was more. Or else it was into Lady Fredegond's
ear-trumpet that she proclaimed her innocence.
'Old Jocastas like me, with a middle-aged son in the house,' she would
shout. And Jeremy would play up to her
by coming across the room and bellowing into the tomb of intelligent
conversation some feeble waggery about his being an old maid, for example, or
about erudition as a substitute for embroidery; any rot would do. And the old harridan would utter that deep
gangster's laugh of hers and wag her head till the stuffed seagulls, or the
artificial petunias, or whatever it was that she happened to be wearing in her
always extraordinary hat, nodded like the plumes of a horse in a French pompe
funèbre of the first class. Yes, how
curious it was, he said to himself again; but how sensible, considering that
they both, his mother and he, desired nothing better than to go on being just
what they were. Her reasons for wanting
to go on being a matriarch were obvious enough; it's fun to be a queen, it's
delightful to receive homage and have a faithful subject. Less obvious, perhaps, at any rate to an
outsider, were his own reasons for preferring the status quo. But, looked into, they turned out to be
cogent enough. There was affection to
begin with; for, under a certain superficial irony and airiness, he was deeply
attached to his mother. Then there was
habit - habit so long standing that this mother had come to be for him almost
like an organ of his own body, hardly less dispensable than his pancreas or his
liver. There was even a feeling of
gratitude towards her for having done to him the things which, at the time she
did them, had seemed the most cruelly unjustifiable. He had fallen in love when he was thirty; he
had wanted to marry. Without making a
single scene, without being anything but sympathetically loving towards himself
and charming in all her dealings with dear little Eileen, Mrs Pordage had set
to work to undermine the relationship between the two young people; and had
succeeded so well that, in the end, the relationship just fell in on itself,
like a house sapped from beneath. He had
been very unhappy at the time, and with a part of himself he had hated his
mother for what she had done. But as the
years passed he had felt less and less bitterly about the whole business, until
now he was positively grateful to her for having delivered him from the horrors
of responsibility, of a family, of regular and remunerative labour, of a wife
who would probably have turned out to be a worse tyrant than his mother -
indeed, who would certainly have turned out to be a worse tyrant; for the
bulging, bustling matron into whom Eileen had by degrees transformed herself
was one of the most disastrous females of his acquaintance: a creature
passionately conventional, proud of her obtuseness, ant-like in her efficiency,
tyrannically benevolent. In short, a
monster. But for his mother's strategy
he would now be the unfortunate Mr Welkin who was Eileen's husband and the
father of no less than four little Welkins as dreadful even in childhood and
adolescence as Eileen had become in her middle age. His mother was doubtless speaking the truth
when she jokingly called herself an old Jocasta, a bloodsucking matriarch; and
doubtless, too, his brother Tom was right when he called him, Jeremy, a Peter
Pan, and talked contemptuously of apron-strings. But the fact remained that he had had the
opportunity to read what he liked and write his little articles; and that his
mother saw to all the practical aspects of life, demanded in return an amount
of devotion which it really wasn't very difficult to give, and left him free,
on alternate Friday afternoons, to savour the refined pleasure of an infinite
squalor in Maida Vale. Meanwhile, look
what had happened to poor Tom! Second
Secretary at Tokyo; First Secretary at Oslo; Counsellor at La Paz; and now
back, more or less for good, in the Foreign Office, climbing slowly up the
hierarchy, towards posts of greater responsibility and tasks of increasing
turpitude. And as the salary rose and
the mortality of what he was called upon to do correspondingly sank, the poor
fellow's uneasiness had increased, until at last, with the row over Abyssinia,
he just hadn't been able to stand it any longer. On the brink of resignation or a nervous
breakdown, he had managed, in the nick of time, to get himself converted to
Catholicism. Thenceforward, he had been
able to pack up the moral responsibility for his share in the general iniquity,
take it to Farm Street and leave it there, in camphor, so to speak, with the
Jesuit Fathers. Admirable
arrangement! It had made a new man of
him. After fourteen years of
childlessness, his wife had suddenly had a baby - conceived, Jeremy had
calculated, on the very night that the Spanish civil war began. Then, two days after the sack of Nanking, Tom
had published a volume of comic verses.
(Curious how many English Catholics take to comic versifying.) Meanwhile, he was steadily gaining weight;
between the Anschluss and Munich he had put on eleven pounds. Another year or two of Farm Street and
power-politics, and Tom would turn the scale at fourteen stone and have written
the libretto of a musical comedy. No!
Jeremy said to himself with decision.
No! it simply wasn't admissible.
Better Peter Pan and apron-strings and infinite squalor in a little
room. Better a thousand times. Better to begin with, aesthetically; for this
getting fat on Realpolitik, this scribbling of comic verses on the
margins of an engraving of the Crucifixion - really, it was too inelegant. And that wasn't all: it was better even
ethnically; for, of course, the old Propter-Object was right: if you can't be
sure of doing positive good, at least keep out of mischief. And there was poor old Tom, as busy as a
beaver and, now that he was a Papist, as happy as a lark, working away at the
precise spot where he could do the maximum amount of harm to the greatest
possible number of people.
(The
other scab came loose. Jeremy sighed and
leaned back in his chair.)
One
scratched like a baboon, he concluded; one lived, at fifty-four, in the
security of one's mother's shadow; one's sexual life was simultaneously
infantile and corrupt; by no stretch of the imagination could one's work be
described as useful or important. But
when one compared oneself with other people, with Tom, for example, or even
with the eminent and august, with cabinet ministers and steel-magnates and
bishops and celebrated novelists - well, really, one didn't come out so badly
after all. Judged by the negative
criterion of harmlessness, one even came out extremely well. So that, taking all things into
consideration, there was really no reason why one should do anything much about
anything. Having decided which, it was
time to get back to the Hauberks.
CHAPTER TWO
Virginia did not wake up that morning till nearly ten;
and even after having had her bath and eaten her breakfast she remained in bed
for another hour or more, her eyes closed, leaning back motionless against the
heaped-up pillows, like a beautiful young convalescent newly emerged from the
valley of the shadow.
The
valley of the shadow of death; of the greater deaths and all the little
deaths. Through deaths come
transfigurations. He who would save his
life must lose it. Men and women are
continually trying to lose their lives, the stale, unprofitable, senseless
lives of their ordinary personalities.
For ever trying to get rid of them, and in a thousand different
ways. In the frenzies of gambling and
revivalism; in the monomanias of avarice and perversion, of research and
sectarianism and ambition; in the compensatory lunacies of alcohol, of reading,
of daydreaming, of morphia; in the hallucinations of opium and the cinema and
ritual; in the wild epilepsies of political enthusiasm and erotic pleasure; in
the stupors of veronal and
exhaustion. To escape; to forget one's
own, old, wearisome identity; to become someone else or, better, some other thing
- a mere body, strangely numbed or more than ordinarily sentient; or else
just a state of impersonal mind, a mode of unindividualized consciousness. What happiness, what a blissful
alleviation! Even for such as were not
previously aware that there was anything in their condition that needed to be
alleviated. Virginia had been one of
those, happy in limitation, not sufficiently conscious of her personal self to
realize its ugliness and inadequacy, or the fundamental wretchedness of the
human state. And yet, when Dr Obispo had
scientifically engineered her escape into an erotic epilepsy more
excruciatingly intense than anything she had known before or even imagined
possible, Virginia had realized that, after all, there was something in her
existence that required alleviating, and that this headlong plunge through the
intenser, utterly alien consciousness into the darkness of a total oblivion was
precisely the alleviation it required.
But, like
all the other addictions, whether to drugs or books, to power or applause, the
addiction to pleasure tends to aggravate the condition it temporarily
alleviates. The addict goes down into
the valley of the shadow of his own particular little death - down
indefatigably, desperately down in search of something else, something not
himself, something other and better than the life he miserably lives as a human
person in the hideous world of human persons.
He goes down and, either violently or in delicious inertia, he dies and
is transfigured; but dies only for a little while, is transfigured only
momentarily. After the little death is a
little resurrection, a resurrection out of unconsciousness, out of
self-annihilating excitement, back into the misery of knowing oneself alone and
weak and worthless, back into a completer separateness, an acuter sense of
personality. And the acuter the sense of
separate personality, the more urgent the demand for yet another experience of
assuaging death and transfiguration. The
addiction alleviates, but in doing so increases the pains demanding
alleviation.
Lying
there, propped up against her pillows, Virginia was suffering her daily
resurrection from the valley of the shadow of her nocturnal deaths. From having been epileptically something
else, she was becoming her own self again - a self, it was true, still somewhat
numbed and bewildered by fatigue, still haunted by the memory of strange scenes
and overpowering sensations, but none the less recognizably the old Virginia;
the Virginia who admired Uncle Jo for his success and was grateful to him for
having given her such a wonderful time, the Virginia who had always laughed and
thought life grand and never bothered about things, the Virginia who had made
Uncle Jo build the Grotto and have loved Our Lady ever since she was a
kid. And now this Virginia was
double-crossing her poor old, admired Uncle Jo - not just telling a few little
fibs, which might happen to anyone, but deliberately and systematically
double-crossing him. And not only him;
she was also double-crossing poor Pete.
Talking to him all the time; giving him the glad eye (as glad an eye, at
any rate, as she was capable of giving in the circumstances); practically
making love to him in public, so that Uncle Jo wouldn't suspect Sig. Not that she wouldn't be glad in some ways if
Uncle Jo did suspect him. She'd love to
see him getting a punch on the jaw and being thrown out. Just love it!
But meanwhile she was doing everything she could to cover him up; and in
the process making that poor, idiot boy imagine she was stuck on him. A double-crosser - that was all she was. A double-crosser. The knowledge of this worried her, if made her
feel unhappy and ashamed; it prevented her laughing at things the way she used
to; it kept her thinking, and feeling bad about what she was doing, and
resolving not to do it again; resolving, but not being able to prevent herself
doing it again, even though she really hated herself for doing it and hated Sig
for making her and, above all, for telling her, in that horrible, hard-boiled,
cynical way, just how her made her and why she couldn't resist it. And one of the reasons why she had to do it
again was that it stopped her feeling bad about having done it before. But then, afterwards, she felt bad
again. Felt so bad, indeed, that she had
been ashamed to look Our Lady in the face.
For more than a week now the white velvet curtains across the front of the
sacred doll's house had remained drawn.
She simply didn't dare to open them, because she knew that if she did,
and if she made a promise there, on her knees, to Our Lady, it just wouldn't be
any good. When that awful Sig came along
again, she'd just go all funny inside, like her bones had all turned into
rubber, and the strength would go out of her and, before she knew where she
was, it would all be happening again.
And that would be much worse than the other times, because she'd made a
promise about it to Our Lady. So that it
was better not to make any promise at all - not now, at any rate; not until
there seemed to be some chance of keeping it.
Because it just couldn't last that way for ever; she simply refused to
believe she'd always have that awful rubber feeling in her bones. Some day she'd feel strong enough to tell Sig
to go to hell. And when she did, she'd
make that promise. Till then, better
not.
Virginia
opened her eyes, and looked with a nostalgic expression at the niche between
the windows and the drawn white curtains that concealed the treasure within -
the cunning little crown, the seed pearls, the mantle of blue silk, the
benignant face, the adorable little hands.
Virginia sighed profoundly and, closing her eyes again, tried, by a simulation
of sleep, to recapture the happy oblivion from which the light of morning had
forced her unwillingly to emerge.
CHAPTER THREE
Mr Stoyte had spent his morning at the Beverly
Pantheon. Very reluctantly; for he had a
horror of cemeteries, even his own. But
the claims of moneymaking were sacred; business was a duty to which all merely
personal considerations had to be sacrificed.
And talk of business! The Beverly
Pantheon was the finest real estate proposition in the country. The land had been bought during the War at
five hundred dollars an acre, improved (with roads, Tiny Tajes, Columbariums
and statuary) to the tune of about ten thousand an acre, and was now selling,
in grave-sites, at the rate of a hundred and sixty thousand an acre - selling
so fast that the entire capital outlay had already been amortized, so that
everything from now on would be pure jam.
And, of course, as the population of Los Angeles increased, the jam
would become correspondingly more copious.
And the population was increasing, at the rate of nearly ten per
cent per annum - and, what was more, the main accession consisted of elderly
retired people from other States of the Union; the very people who would bring
the greatest immediate profit to the Pantheon.
And so, when Charlie Habakkuk sent that urgent call for him to come over
and discuss the latest plans of improvement and extensions, Mr Stoyte had found
it morally impossible to refuse.
Repressing his antipathies, he had done his duty. All that morning the two men had sat with
their cigars in Charlie's office at the top of the Tower of Resurrection; and
Charlie had waved those hands of his, and spouted cigar-smoke from his
nostrils, and talked - God, how he had talked!
As though he were one of those men in a red fez trying to make you buy
an Oriental carpet - and incidentally, Mr Stoyte reflected morosely, that was
what Charlie looked like; only he was better fed than most of those carpet
boys, and therefore greasier.
'Cut the
sales talk,' he growled out loud. 'You
seem to forget I own the place.'
Charlie
looked at him with an expression of pained surprise. Sales talk?
But this wasn't sales talk. This
was real, this was earnest. The Pantheon
was his baby; for all practical purposes he had invented the place. It was he who had thought up the Tiny Taj and
the Church of the Bard; he who, on his own initiative, had bought that bargain
lot of statues of Genoa; he who had first clearly formulated the policy of
injecting sex-appeal into death; he who had resolutely resisted every attempt
to introduce into the cemetery any representation of grief or age, any symbol
of mortality, and image of the sufferings of Jesus. He had had to fight for his ideas, he had had
to listen to a lot of criticism; but the results had proved him right. Anyone who complained that there was no
Crucifixion in the place could be referred to the published accounts. And here was Mr Stoyte talking sarcastically
about sales talk. Sales talk, indeed,
when the demand for space in the Pantheon was so great that existing
accommodation would soon be inadequate.
There would have to be enlargements.
More space, more buildings, more amenities. Bigger and better; progress; service.
In the
top of the Tower of Resurrection, Charlie Habakkuk unfolded his plans. The new extension was to have a Poet's
Corner, open to any bona fide writer - though he was afraid they'd have to draw
the line at the authors of advertising copy, which was a pity, because of lot
of them made good money and might be persuaded to pay extra for the prestige of
being buried with the moving-picture people.
But that cut both ways - because the scenario writers wouldn't feel that
the Poet's Corner was exclusive enough if you let in the advertising boys. And seeing that the moving-picture fellows
made so much more than the others ... well, it stood to reason, Charlie had
concluded, it stood to reason. And, of
course, they'd have to have a replica of Westminster Abbey in the Poet's
Corner. Wee Westminster - it would sound
kind of cute. And as they needed a
couple of extra mortuary furnaces anyhow, they'd have them installed there in
the Dean's Yard. And they'd put a new
automatic record-player in the crypt, so that there'd be more variety in the
music. Not that people didn't appreciate
the Perpetual Wurlitzer; they did. But
all the same it got a bit monotonous. So
he'd thought they might have some recordings of a choir singing hymns and
things, and perhaps, every now and then, just for a change, some preacher
giving an inspirational message, so that you'd be able to sit in the Garden of
Contemplation, for example, and listen to the Wurlitzer for a few minutes, and
then the choir singing 'Abide with Me,' and then a nice sort of Barrymore voice
saying some piece, like the Gettysburg Address, or 'Laugh and the World Laughs
with You,' or maybe some nice juicy bit by Mrs Eddy of Ralph Waldo Trine -
anything would do so long as it was inspirational enough. And then there was his idea of the Catacombs. And, boy, it was the best idea he'd ever
had. Leading Mr Stoyte to the
south-eastern window, he had pointed across an intervening valley of tombs and
cypresses and the miniature monuments of bogus antiquity, to where the land
sloped up again to a serrated ridge on the further side. There, he had shouted excitedly, there, in
that hump in the middle; they'd tunnel down into that. Hundreds of yards of catacombs. Lined with reinforced concrete to make them
earthquake-proof. The only class-A
catacombs in the world. And little
chapels, like the ones in Rome. And a
lot of phoney-looking murals, looking like they were real old. You could get them done cheap by one of those
W.P.A. art projects. Not that those guys
knew how to paint, of course; but that was quite O.K. seeing that the murals had
to look phoney anyhow. And they wouldn't
have anything but candles and little lamps for people to carry around - no
electric light at all, except right at the very end of all those winding
passages and stairs, where there'd be a great big sort of underground church,
with one of those big nude statues that were going up at the San Francisco Fair
and that they'd be glad to sell for a thousand bucks or even less when the show
was over - one of those modernistic broads with muscles on them - and they'd
have her standing right in the middle there, with maybe some fountain spouting
all around her and concealed pink lighting in the water so she'd look kind of
real. Why, the tourists would come a
thousand miles to see it. Because there
was nothing people liked so much as caves.
Look at those Carlsbad Caverns, for example; and all those caves in
Virginia. And those were just
common-or-garden natural caves, without murals or anything. Whereas these would be catacombs. Yes, sir; real catacombs, like the things the
Christian Martyrs lived in - and, by gum, that was another idea! Martyrs!
Why wouldn't they have a Chapel of the Martyrs with a nice plaster group
of some girls with no clothes on, just going to be eaten by a lion? People wouldn't stand for the Crucifixion;
but they'd get a real thrill out of that.
Mr Stoyte
had listened wearily and with repugnance.
He loathed his Pantheon and everything to do with it. Loathed it because in spite of statues and
Wurlitzer, it spoke to him of nothing but disease and death and corruption and
final judgement; because it was here, in the Pantheon, that they would bury him
- at the foot of the pedestal of Rodin's 'Le Baiser.' (An assistant manager had once inadvisedly
pointed out the spot to him and been immediately fired; but there was no
dismissing the memory of his offence.)
Charlie's enthusiasm for catacombs and Wee Westminsters elicited no
answering warmth; only occasional grunts and a final sullen O.K. for everything
except the Chapel of the Martyrs. Not
that the Chapel of the Martyrs seemed to Mr Stoyte a bad idea; on the contrary,
he was convinced that the public would go crazy over it. If he rejected it, it was merely on principle
- because it would never do to allow Charlie Habakkuk to think he was always
right.
'Get
plans and estimates for everything else,' he ordered in a tone so gruff that he
might have been delivering a reprimand.
'But no martyrs. I won't have any
martyrs.'
Almost in
tears, Charlie pleaded for just one lion, just one Early Christian Virgin with
her hands tied behind her back - because people got such a kick out of anything
to do with ropes or handcuffs. Two or
three Virgins would have been much better, of course; but he'd be content with
one. 'Just one, Mr Stoyte,' he implored, clasping his eloquent hands. 'Only one.'
Obstinately
deaf to all his entreaties, Mr Stoyte shook his head. 'No martyrs here,' he said. 'That's final.' And to show that it was final, he threw away
the butt of his cigar and got up to go.
Five
minutes later, Charlie Habakkuk was letting off steam to his secretary. The ingratitude of people! The stupidity! He'd a good mind to resign, just to show the
old buzzard that they couldn't get on without him. Not for five minutes. Who was it that had made the place what it
was: the uniquest cemetery in the world?
Absolutely the uniquest.
Who? (Charlie slapped himself on
the chest.) And who made all the
money? Jo Stoyte. And what had he done to make the place
a success? Absolutely nothing at
all. It was enough to make you want to
be a communist. And the old devil wasn't
grateful or even decently polite.
Pushing you around as though you were a bum off the streets! Well, there was one comfort: Old Jo hadn't
been looking any too good this morning.
One of these days, maybe, they'd have the pleasure of burying him. Down there in the vestibule of the
Columbarium, eight foot underground. And
serve him right!
It was
not only that he didn't look too good; leaning back in the car which was taking
him down to Beverly Hills on his way to see Clancy, Mr Stoyte was thinking, as
he had thought so often during these last two or three weeks, that he didn't
feel too good. He'd wake up in the
morning feeling kind of sluggish and heavy; and his mind didn't seem to be as
clear as it was. Obispo called it
suppressed influenza and made him take those pills every night; but they didn't
seem to do him any good. He went on
feeling that way just the same. And, on
top of everything else, he was worrying himself sick about Virginia. The Baby was acting strange, like someone
that wasn't really there; so quiet, and not noticing anything, and starting
when you spoke to her and asking what you said.
Acting for all the world like one of those advertisements for Sal
Hepatica or California Syrup of Figs; and that was what he'd have thought it
was, if it hadn't been for the way she went on with that Peter Boone
fellow. Always talking to him at meals;
and asking him to come and have a swim; and wanting to take a squint down his
microscope - and what sort of a damn did she give for microscopes, he'd
like to know? Throwing herself at him -
that was what it had looked like on the surface. And that kind of syrup-of-figs way of acting
(like people at those Quaker Meetings that Prudence used to make him go to
before she took up with Christian Science) - that all fitted in. You'd say she was kind of stuck on the
fellow. But then why should it have
happened so suddenly? Because she'd
never shown any signs of being stuck on him before. Always treated him like you'd treat a great
big dog - friendly and all that, but not taking him too seriously; just a pat
on the head and then, when he'd wagged his tail, thinking of something
else. No, he couldn't understand it; he
just couldn't figure it out. It looked
like she was stuck on him; but then, at the same time, it looked like she just
didn't notice if he was a boy or a dog.
Because that was how she was acting even now. She paid a lot of attention to him - only the
way you'd pay attention to a nice big retriever. And that was what had thrown him out. If she'd been stuck on Pete in the ordinary
way, then he'd have got mad, and raised hell, and thrown the boy out of the
house. But how could you raise hell over
a dog? How could you get mad with a girl
for telling a retriever she'd like to have a squint down his microscope? You couldn't even if you tried; because
getting mad didn't make any sense. All
he'd been able to do was just worry, trying to figure things out and not being able to. There was only one thing that was clear, and
that was that the Baby meant more to him than he had thought, more than he had
ever believed it possible that anyone should mean to him. It had begun by his just wanting her -
wanting her because she was warm and smelt good; wanting her because she was
young and he was old, because she was so innocent and he was too tired for
anything not innocence to excite. That
was how it had begun; but almost immediately something else had happened. That youth of hers, that innocence and
sweetness - they were more than just exciting.
She was so cute and lovely and childish, he almost felt like crying over
her, even while he wanted to hold and handle and devour. She did the strangest things to him - made
him feel good, like you felt when you'd tanked up a bit on Scotch, and at the
same time made him feel good, like you felt when you were at church, or
listening to William Jennings Bryan, or making some poor kid happy by giving
him a doll or something. And Virginia
wasn't just anybody's kid, like the ones at the hospital; she was his kid,
his very own. Prudence wasn't able to
have children; and at the time he'd been sore about it. But now he was glad. Because if he'd had a row of kids, they'd be
standing in the way of the Baby. And
Virginia meant more to him than any daughter could mean. Because even if she were only a
daughter, which she wasn't, she was probably a lot nicer than his own
flesh-and-blood daughter would have been - seeing that, after all, the Stoytes
were all a pretty sour-faced lot and Prudence had been kind of dumb even if she
was a good woman, which she certainly was - maybe a bit too good. Whereas with the Baby everything was just
right, just perfect. He had been happier
since he'd known her than he'd ever been in years. With her around, things had seemed worth
doing again. You didn't have to go
through life asking 'Why?' The reason for
everything was there in front of you, wearing that cunning little yachting-cap,
maybe, or all dressed up with her emeralds and everything for some party with
the moving-picture crowd.
And now
something had happened. The reason for
carrying on was being taken away from him.
The Baby had changed; she was fading away from him; she had gone
somewhere else. Where had she gone? And why?
Why did she want to leave him? To
leave him all alone. Absolutely alone,
and he was an old man, and the white slab was there in the vestibule of the
Columbarium, waiting for him.
'What's
the matter, Baby?' he had asked. Time
and again he had asked, with anguish in his heart, too miserable to be angry,
too much afraid of being left alone to care about his dignity, or his rights,
about anything except keeping her, at whatever cost: 'What's the matter, Baby?'
And all
she ever did was to look at him as though she were looking at him from some
place a million miles away - to look at him like that and say: Nothing; she was
feeling fine; she hadn't got anything on her mind; and, no, there wasn't
anything he could do for her, because he'd given her everything already, and
she was perfectly happy.
And if he
mentioned Pete (kind of casually, so she shouldn't think he suspected anything)
she wouldn't even bat an eyelid; just say: Yes, she liked Pete; he was a nice
boy, but unsophisticated - and that made her laugh; and she liked laughing.
'But,
Baby, you're different,' he would say; and it was difficult for him to keep his
voice from breaking, he was so unhappy.
'You don't act like you used to, Baby.'
And all
she'd answer was, that that was funny because she felt just the same.
'You
don't feel the same about me,' he would say.
And she'd
say she did. And he'd say no. And she'd say it wasn't true. Because what reasons did he have for saying
she felt different about him? And of
course she was quite right; there weren't any reasons you could lay your finger
on. He couldn't honestly say she acted
less affectionate, or didn't want to let him kiss her, or anything like that. She was different because of something you
couldn't put a name to. Something in the
way she looked and moved and sat around.
He couldn't describe it except by saying it was like she wasn't really
there where you thought you were looking at her, but some place else; some
place where you couldn't touch her, or talk to her, or even really see
her. That was how it was. But whenever he had tried to explain it to
her, she had just laughed at him and said he must be having some of those
feminine intuitions you read about in stories - only his feminine intuitions
were all wrong.
And so
there he'd be, back where he started from, trying to figure it out and not
being able to, and worrying himself sick.
Yes, worrying himself sick.
Because when he'd got over feeling sluggish and heavy, like he always
did in the mornings now, he felt so worried about the Baby that he'd start
bawling at the servants and being rude to that god-damned Englishman and
getting mad with Obispo. And the next
thing that happened was that he couldn't digest his meals. He was getting heartburn and sour stomach;
and one day he had such a pain that he'd thought it was appendicitis. But Obispo had said it was just gas; because
of his suppressed influenza. And then
he'd got mad and told the fellow he must be a lousy doctor if he couldn't cure
a little thing like that. Which must
have put the fear of God into Obispo, because he said, 'Just give me two or
three days more. That's all I need to
complete the treatment.' And he'd said
that suppressed influenza was a funny thing; didn't seem to be anything, but
poisoned the whole system, so you couldn't think straight any more; and you'd
get to imagining things that weren't really there, and worrying about them.
Which
might be true in a general way; but in this case he just knew it wasn't all
imagination. The Baby was different;
he had a reason for being worried.
Sunk in
his mood of perplexed and agitated gloom, Mr Stoyte was carried down the
windings of the mountain road, through the bowery oasis of Beverly Hills, and
eastward (for Clancy lived in Hollywood) along Santa Monica Boulevard. Over the telephone, that morning, Clancy had
put on one of his melodramatic conspirator acts. From the rigmarole of hints and dark
allusions and altered names, Mr Stoyte had gathered that the news was
good. Clancy and his boys had evidently
succeeded in buying up most of the best land in the San Felipe Valley. At another time, Mr Stoyte would have exulted
in his triumph; today, even the prospect of making a million of two of easy
money gave him no sort of pleasure. In
the world he had been reduced to inhabiting, millions were irrelevant. For what could millions do to allay his
miseries? The miseries of an old, tired,
empty man; of a man who had no end in life but himself, no philosophy, no
knowledge but of his own interests, no appreciations, not even any friends -
only a daughter-mistress, a concubine-child, frantically desired, cherished to
the point of idolatry. And now this
being, on whom he had relied to give significance to his life, had begun to
fail him. He had come to doubt her
fidelity - but to doubt without tangible reasons, to doubt in such a way that
none of the ordinary satisfying reactions, of rage, of violence, of
recrimination, was appropriate. The
sense was going out of his life and he could do nothing; for he was in a
situation with which he did not know how to deal, hopelessly bewildered. And always, in the background of his mind,
there floated an image of that circular marble room, with Rodin's image of
desire at the centre, and that white slab in the pavement at its base - the
slab that would some day have his name engraved upon it: Joseph Panton Stoyte,
and the dates of his birth and death.
And along with that inscription went another, in orange letters on a
coal-black ground: 'It is a terrible thing to fall into the hands of the living
God.' And meanwhile here was Clancy,
conspiratorially announcing victory.
Good news! Good news! A year or two from now he would be richer by
another million. But the millions were
in one world and the old, unhappy, frightened man was in another, and there was
no communication between the two.
CHAPTER FOUR
Jeremy worked for a couple of hours, unpacking,
examining, provisionally cataloguing, filing.
There were no finds this morning - merely accounts and legal documents
and business letters. Stuff for Coulton
and Tawney and the Hammonds; not at all his cup of tea.
By
half-past twelve the weight of boredom had become too much for him. He broke off and, in search of a little
spiritual refreshment, turned to the Fifth Earl's vellum-bound notebook.
'July
1780,' he read. 'Sensuality is close
allied with sorrow, and it sometimes happens that, on account of the very
sincerity of her Grief, the weeping Widow is betrayed by her own Feelings and
finds herself unable to resist the importunities of the funeral Guest, who
knows the Art of passing imperceptibly from Condolence to Familiarity. I myself have posthumously cuckolded a Duke
and two Viscounts (one of them no later than last night) upon the very Beds
from which, but a few hours before, they had been borne in Pomp to the
ancestral Sepulchre.'
That was
something for his mother, Jeremy reflected.
The sort of thing she really adored!
He had a good mind, if it wasn't too horribly expensive, to cable it to
her in a night letter.
He
returned to the notebook.
'One of
the Livings in my Gift having unexpectedly fallen vacant, my Sister sent me
today a young Divine whom she commends, and I believe her, for his singular
Virtue. I will have no Parsons around me
but such as drink deep, ride to Hounds and caress the Wives and daughters of
their Parishioners. A Virtuous Parson
does nothing to test or exercise the Faith of his Flock; but as I have written
to my Sister, it is by Faith that we come to Salvation.'
The next
entry was dated March 1784.
'In old
Tombs newly opened a kind of ropy Slime depends from the roof and coats the
walls. It is the condensation of decay.'
'January
1786. Half a dozen pensées in as many
years. If I am to fill a volume at this
rate, I must outlast the patriarchs. I
regret my sloth, but console myself with the thought that my fellow men are too
contemptible for me to waste my time instructing or entertaining them.'
Jeremy
hurried over three pages of reflections on politics and economics. Under the date of March 12th, 1787, he found
a more interesting entry:
'Dying is
almost the least spiritual of our acts, more strictly carnal even than the act
of love. There are Death Agonies that
are like the strainings of the Costive at stool. Today I saw Mr B. die.'
'January
11th, 1788. This day fifty years ago I
was born. From solitude in the Womb, we
emerge into solitude among our Fellows, and return again to solitude within the
Grave. We pass our lives in the attempt
to mitigate that solitude. But
Propinquity is never fusion. The most
populous City is but an agglomeration of wilderness. We exchange Words, but exchange them from
prison to prison, and without hope that they will signify to others what they
mean to ourselves. We marry, and there
are two solitudes in the house instead of one; we beget children, and there are
many solitudes. We reiterate the act of
love; but again propinquity is never fusion.
The most intimate contact is only of Surfaces, and we couple, as I have
seen the condemned Prisoners at Newgate coupling with their Trulls, between the
bars of our cages. Pleasure cannot be
shared; like Pain, it can only be experienced or inflicted, and when we give
Pleasure to our Lovers or bestow Charity upon the Needy, we do so, not to
gratify the object of our Benevolence, but only ourselves. For the Truth is that we are kind for the
same reason as we are cruel, in order that we may enhance the sense of our own
Power; and this we are for ever trying to do, despite the fact that by doing it
we cause ourselves to feel more solitary than ever. The reality of Solitude is the same in all
men, there being no mitigation of it, except in Forgetfulness, Stupidity or
Illusion; but a man's sense of Solitude is proportionate to the sense and fact
of his Power. In any set of
circumstances, the more Power we have, the more intensely do we feel our
solitude. I have enjoyed much Power in
my life.'
'June
1788. Captain Pavey came to pay his
respects today, a round, jovial, low man, whom even his awe of me could not
entirely prevent from breaking out into the vulgar Mirth which is native to
him. I questioned him concerned his last
Voyage, and he very minutely described for me the mode of packing the Slaves in
the holds; the chains used to secure them; the feeding of them and, in calm
weather, the exercising on deck, though always with Nets about the bulwarks, to
prevent the more desperate from casting themselves into the sea; the
Punishments for the refractory; the schools of hungry sharks accompanying the
vessel; the scurvy and other diseases, the wearing away of the negroes' Skin by
the hardness of the planks on which they lie and the continual Motion of the
waves; the Stench so horrible that even the hardiest seaman will turn pale and
swoon away, if he ventures into the hold; the frequent Deaths and almost
incredibly rapid Putrefaction, especially in damp Weather near the Line. When he took his leave, I made him a present
of a gold snuff box. Anticipating no
such favour, he was so coarsely loud in his expression of thanks and future
devotion to my Interests, that I was forced to cut him short. The snuff box cost me sixty guineas; Captain
Pavey's last three Voyages have brought me upwards of forty thousand. Power and wealth increase in direct proportion
to a man's distance from the material objects from which wealth and power are
ultimately derived. For every risk taken
by the General Officer, the private soldier takes a hundred; and for every
guinea earned by the latter the General earns a hundred. So with myself and Pavey and the Slaves. The Slaves labour in the Plantation for
nothing but blows and their diet; Captain Pavey undergoes the hardships and
dangers of the Sea and lives not so well as a Haberdasher or Vintner; I put my
hands to nothing more material than a Banker's draft, and a shower of gold
descends upon me for my pains. In a
world such as ours, a man is given but three choices. In the first place, he may do as the
multitude have always done and, too stupid to be wholly a knave, mitigate his
native baseness with a no less native folly.
Second, he may imitate those more consummate fools who painfully deny
their native Baseness in order to practise Virtue. Third, he may choose to be a man of sense -
one who, knowing his native Baseness, thereby learns to make use of it and, by
the act of knowledge, rises superior to it and to his more foolish
Fellows. For myself, I have chosen to be
a man of sense.'
'March
1789. Reason promises happiness; Feeling
protests that it is Happiness; Sense alone gives Happiness. And Happiness itself is like dust in the
mouth.'
'July
1789. If Men and Women took their Pleasures as noisily as the Cats, what
Londoner could ever hope to sleep at nights?'
'July
1789. The Bastille is fallen. Long live the Bastille!'
The next
few pages were devoted to the Revolution.
Jeremy skipped them. In 1794 the
Fifth Earl's interest in the Revolution gave place to interest in his own
health.
'To those
who visit me,' he had written, 'I say that I have been sick and am now well
again. The words are quite untrue; for
it was not I who lay at Death's door, nor is it I who am recovered. The first was a special creation of Fever, an
embodiment of Pain and Lassitude; the second is not I, but an old man, weak,
shrunken and without desires. My name
and some memories are all that remain to me of the Being I once was. It is as if a Man had died and willed to some
surviving Friend a handful of worthless trinkets to remember him by.'
'1794. A sick, rich Man is like one who lies wounded
and alone in the deserts of Egypt; the Vultures hover lower and lower above his
head and the Jackals and Hyenas prowl in ever-narrowing circles about the place
where he lies. Not even a rich Man's
Heirs could be more unsleepingly attentive. When I look into my Nephew's face and read
there, behind the mask of Solicitude, his impatient longing for my Death and
his disappointment that I am not already gone, I feel an influx of new Life and
Strength. If for no other reason, I will
live on to rob Him of the Happiness which he still believes (for he is
confident of my Relapse) to be within his Grasp.'
'1794. The World is a Mirror, reflecting his image
to the Beholder.'
'January
1795. I have tried King David's remedy
against old age and found it wanting.
Warmth cannot be imparted, but only evoked; and where no lingering spark
persists, even tinder will not raise a flame.
'It may
be as the Parsons say, that we are saved by another's vicarious suffering; but
I can vouch for the fact that vicarious pleasure is without efficacity, except
only to enhance the sentiments of Superiority and Power in him who inflicts
it.'
'1795. As the Satisfactions of Sense decay, we
compensate ourselves for their loss by cultivating the sentiments of Pride and
Vanity. The love of Domination is
independent of the bodily faculties and therefore, when the body loses its
powers, may easily take the place of vanished Pleasure. For myself, I was never without the love of
Dominion even when in the Throes of Pleasure.
Since my late Death, the Phantom that remains of me is forced to content
itself with the first, less substantial and, above all, less harmless of these
two Satisfactions.'
'July
1796. The fishponds at Gonister were dug
in the Ages of Superstition by the monks of the Abbey upon whose foundations
the present House is built. Under King
Charles I, my great-great-grandfather caused a number of leaden Discs engraved
with his cypher and the date, to be attached by silver rings to the tails of
fifty well-grown carp. Not less than
twenty of these fish are alive today, as one may count whenever the bell is
rung that calls the Creatures to be fed.
With them come others even larger than they - survivors, it may be, from
the monkish times before King Henry's Dissolution of the Religious Houses. Watching them through the pellucid Water, I
marvel at the strength and unimpaired agility of these great Fishes, of which
the oldest were perhaps alive when the Utopia was written, while the youngest
are co-eval with the author of Paradise Lost. The latter attempted to justify God's ways to
Man. He would have done a more useful
Work in undertaking to explain the ways of God to Fish. Philosophers have wasted their own and their
readers' time in speculations about the Immortality of the Soul; the Alchemists
have pored for centuries over their crucibles in the vain hope of discovering
the Elixir or the Stone. Meanwhile, in
every pond and river, one may find Carps that have outlived three Platos and
half a dozen Paracelsuses. The Secret of
eternal Life is not to be found in old Books, nor in liquid Gold, nor even in
Heaven; it is to be found in the Mud and only awaits a skilful Angler.'
Outside
the corridor the bell rang for lunch.
Jeremy rose, put the Fifth Earl's notebook away and walked towards the
lift, smiling to himself at the thought of the pleasure he would derive from
telling that bumptious ass, Obispo, that all his best ideas about longevity had
been anticipated in the eighteenth century.
CHAPTER FIVE
Luncheon, in the absence of Mr Stoyte, was a very
cheerful meal. The servants went about
their business unreprimanded. Jeremy
could talk without the risk of being snubbed or insulted. Dr Obispo was able to tell the story about
the chimney-sweep who applied for life-insurance after going on his honeymoon
and, from the far-away depths of that almost trance-like state of fatigue
- that state which she deliberately
fostered, so as not to have to think too much and feel too badly about what was
happening - Virginia was at liberty to laugh at it as loudly as she liked. And though with one part of herself she would
have liked not to laugh at all, because she didn't want to make Sig think she
was encouraging him in any way, with another part she wanted to laugh, indeed
couldn't help laughing, because, after all, the story was really very
funny. Besides, it was such a relief not
to have to put on that act with Pete for the benefit of Uncle Jo. No double-crossing. For once, she could be herself. The only fly in the ointment was that this
self she was being was such a miserable specimen: a self with bones that would
go like rubber whenever that horrible Sig chose to come along; a self without
the strength to keep a promise even to Our Lady. Her laughter abruptly ceased.
Only Pete
was consistently unhappy - about the chimney-sweep, of course, and Virginia's
burst of merriment; but also because Barcelona had fallen and, with it, all his
hopes of a speedy victory over fascism, all prospect of ever seeing any of his
old comrades again. And that wasn't
all. Laughing at the story of the
chimney-sweep was only a single painful incident among many. Virginia had allowed the first two courses of
the meal to come and go without once paying any attention to him. But why, why?
His distress was aggravated by bitter bewilderment. Why?
In the light of what had been happening during the past three weeks it
was inexplicable. Ever since the evening
of the day she had turned back at the Grotto, Virginia had been simply
wonderful to him - going out of her way to talk to him, inviting him to tell
her things about Spain and even about biology.
Why, she had actually asked to look at something under the
microscope. Trembling with happiness, so
that he could hardly adjust the slide, he had focused the instrument on a
preparation of the carp's intestinal flora.
Then she had sat down in his place, and as she bent over the eyepiece
her auburn curls had swung down on either side of the microscope and, above the
edge of her pink sweater, the nape of her neck had been uncovered, so white, so
tangibly inviting, that the enormous effort he had had to make to prevent
himself from kissing it had left him feeling almost faint.
There had
been times during the ensuing days when he wished that he hadn't made that
effort. But then his better self would
reassert its rule and he was glad again that he had. Because, of course, it wouldn't have been
right. For, though he had long since
given up the family belief in the Blood-of-the-Lamb business, he still remembered
what his pious and conventional mother had said about kissing anyone you
weren't engaged to; he was still at heart the earnest adolescent whom Reverend
Schlitz's eloquence had fired during the perplexities of puberty with a
passionate determination to be continent, a conviction of the Sacredness of
Love, an enthusiasm for something wonderful called Christian marriage. But at the moment, unfortunately, he wasn't
earning enough to feel justified in asking Virginia to accept his sacred love
and enter into Christian marriage with him.
And there was the added complication that on his side the Christian
marriage wouldn't be Christian except in substance, whereas Virginia was
attached to the institution which Reverend Schlitz sometimes called the Whore
of Babylon and the Marxists regarded as pre-eminently detestable. An institution, moreover, that would think as
poorly of him as he thought of it - though he thought rather less poorly of it
now that Hitler was persecuting it in Germany and since he had been looked
after by those Sisters of Mercy in Spain.
And even if those religious and financial difficulties could somehow be
miraculously smoothed away, there remained the dreadful fact of Mr Stoyte. He knew, of course, that Mr Stoyte was
nothing more than a father to Virginia, or at most an uncle - but knew it with
that excessive certainty that is born of desire; knew it in the same way as Don
Quixote knew that the pasteboard visor of his helmet was as strong as
steel. It was the kind of knowledge
about which it is prudent to make no enquiries; and, of course, if he asked
Virginia to marry him, such enquiries, or the information such enquiries might
be expected to elicit, would almost inevitably be forced upon him.
Yet
another complicating factor in the situation was Mr Propter. For if Mr Propter was right, as Pete was
coming to feel more and more certain that he was, then it was obviously unwise
to do something that would make more difficult the passage from the human level
to the level of eternity. And though he
loved Virginia, he found it difficult to believe that marriage to her would be
anything but an obstacle to the enlightenment of everybody concerned.
Or
rather, he had thought this; but in the course of the last week or two
his opinion had changed. Or, to be more
exact, he no longer had an opinion; he was just uncertain and bewildered. For Virginia's character seemed almost
certainly to have changed. From being
childlike, loud and extraverted, her innocence had become quiet and
inscrutable. In the past, she had
treated him with the jocular and casual friendliness of mere goodfellowship;
but recently there had been a strange alteration. The jokes had stopped and a kind of earnest
solicitude had taken their place. She
had been simply wonderful to him - but not in the way a girl is wonderful to a
man she wants to fall in love with her.
No, Virginia had been wonderful like a sister - and not an ordinary
sister, either: almost a Sister of Mercy.
Not just any Sister of Mercy: that particular Sister who had nursed him
when he was in hospital at Gerona; the young Sister with the big eyes and the
pale oval face, like the face of the Virgin Mary in a picture; the one who
always seemed to be secretly happy, not because of anything that was going on
around her, but because of something inside, something extraordinary and
beautiful behind her eyes that she could look in at; and when she'd looked at
it, there was no reason any more why she should feel scared by an air-raid, for
example, or upset by an amputation. She
evidently saw things from what Mr Propter called the level of eternity; they
didn't affect her in the way they'd affect a person living on the human level. On the human level you were scared and angry;
or, if you were calm, you made yourself calm by an effort of will. But the Sister was calm without making an
effort of will. At the time, he had
admired without comprehension. Now,
thanks to Mr Propter, he could begin to understand as well as admire.
Well,
that was the face that Virginia's had reminded him of during the past
weeks. There had been a kind of sudden
conversion from the outward-looking life to the inward, from open
responsiveness to secret and mysterious abstraction. The cause of this conversion was beyond his
comprehension; but the fact was manifest, and he had respected it. Respected it by not kissing her neck as she
bent over the microscope; by never even touching her arm or taking her hand; by
not saying to her one word of all he felt about her. In the strange, inexplicable circumstances of
her transformation, such actions, he had felt, would have been inappropriate to
the point positively of sacrilege. It
was as a sister that she had chosen to be wonderful to him; it was therefore as
a brother that he had responded. And
now, for no known reason, she seemed suddenly to have become unaware of his
existence.
The
sister had forgotten her brother; and the Sister of Mercy had forgotten herself
- forgotten herself so far as to listen to Dr Obispo's ignoble anecdote about
the chimney-sweep, even to laugh at it.
And yet, Pete noticed in bewilderment, the moment she stopped laughing,
her face resumed its expression of inwardness and secrecy and detachment. The Sister of Mercy remembered herself as
promptly as she had forgotten. It was
beyond him; he simply couldn't figure it out.
With the
arrival of the coffee, Dr Obispo announced that he proposed to take the
afternoon off and, as there was nothing that urgently needed doing in the
laboratory, he advised Pete to do the same.
Pete thanked him and, pretending to be in a hurry (for he didn't want to
go through the humiliation of being ignored when Virginia discussed her plans
for the afternoon), swallowed his coffee and, mumbling excuses, left the room. A little later he was out in the sunshine,
walking down towards the plain.
As he
went, he thought of some of the things Mr Propter had said to him in the course
of his recent visits.
Of what
he had said about the silliest text in the Bible and the most sensible. 'They hated me without a cause' and 'God is
not mocked; as a man sows, so shall he reap.'
Of what
he had said about nobody ever getting something for nothing - so that a man
would pay for too much money, for example, or too much power, or too much sex,
by being shut up more tightly inside his own ego; so that a country that moved
too quickly and violently would fall under a tyranny, like Napoleon's, or
Stalin's, or Hitler's; and a people that was prosperous and internally peaceful
would pay for it by being smug and self-satisfied and conservative, like the
English.
The
baboons were gibbering as he passed.
Pete recalled some of Mr Propter's remarks about literature. About the wearisomeness, to an adult mind, of
all those merely descriptive plays and novels which critics expected one to
admire. All the innumerable,
interminable anecdotes and romances and character-studies, but no general
theory of anecdotes, no explanatory hypothesis of romance or character. Just a huge collection of facts about lust
and greed, fear and ambition, duty and affection; just facts, and imaginary
facts at that, with no co-ordinating philosophy superior to common sense and
the local system of conventions, no principle of arrangement more rational than
simple aesthetic expediency. And then
the astonishing nonsense talked by those who undertake to elucidate and explain
this hodgepodge of prettily patterned facts and fancies! All that solemn tosh, for example, about
Regional Literature - as though there were some special and outstanding merit
in recording uncoordinated facts about the lusts, greeds and duties of people
who happen to live in the country and speak in dialect! Or else the facts were about the urban poor
and there was an effort to co-ordinate them in terms of some post-Marxian
theory that might be partly true, but was always inadequate. And in that case it was the great Proletarian
Novel. Or else somebody wrote yet
another book proclaiming that Life is Holy; by which he always meant that
anything people do in the way of fornicating, or getting drunk, or losing their
tempers, or feeling maudlin, is entirely O.K. with God and should therefore be
regarded as permissible and even virtuous.
In which case it was up to the critics to talk about the author's ripe humanity,
his deep and tender wisdom, his affinities with the great Goethe, and his
obligations to William Blake.
Pete
smiled as he remembered, but with a certain ruefulness as well as amusement;
for he too had taken this sort of thing with the seriousness its verbiage
seemed to demand.
Misplaced
seriousness - the source of some of our most fatal errors. One should be serious, Mr Propter had said,
only about what deserves to be taken seriously.
And, on the strictly human level, there was nothing that deserved to be
taken seriously except the suffering men inflicted upon themselves by their
crimes and follies. But, in the last
analysis, most of these crimes and follies arose from taking too seriously
things which did not deserve it. And
that, Mr Propter had continued, was another of the enormous defects of
so-called good literature; it accepted the conventional scale of values; it
respected power and position; it admired success; it treated as though they
were reasonable the mainly lunatic preoccupations of statesmen, lovers,
businessmen, social climbers, parents.
In a word, it took seriously the causes of suffering as well as the
suffering. It helped to perpetuate
misery by explicitly or implicitly approving the thoughts and feelings and
practices which could not fail to result in misery. And this approval was bestowed in the most
magnificent and persuasive language. So
that even when a tragedy ended badly, the reader was hypnotized by the
eloquence of the piece into imagining that it was all somehow noble and
worthwhile. Which of course it
wasn't. Because, if you considered them
dispassionately, nothing could be more silly and squalid than the themes of Phèdre,
or Othello, or Wuthering Heights, or the Agamemnon. But the treatment of these themes had been in
the highest degree sublime and thrilling, so that the reader or the spectator
was left with the conviction that, in spite of the catastrophe, all was really
well with the world, the all too human world, which had produced it. No, a good satire was much more deeply
truthful and, of course, much more profitable than a good tragedy. The trouble was that so few good satires
existed, because so few satirists were prepared
to carry their criticism of human values far enough. Candide, for example, was admirable as
far as it went; but it went no further than debunking the principal human
activities in the name of the ideal of harmlessness. Now, it was perfectly true that harmlessness
was the highest ideal most people could aspire to; for, though few had the
power to do much positive good, there was nobody who could not refrain, if he
so desired, from evil. Nevertheless,
mere harmlessness, however excellent, most certainly didn't represent the
highest possible ideal. Il faut
cultiver notre jardin was not the last word in human wisdom; at the best it
was only the last but one.
The sun
was in such a position that, as he walked down the hill, Pete saw two little
rainbows spouting from the nipples of Giambologna's nymph. Thoughts of Noah immediately arose in
conjunction with thoughts of Virginia in her white satin bathing-costume. He tried to repress the latter as
incompatible with the new thoughts he was trying to cultivate about the Sister
of Mercy; and since Noah was not a subject that would bear much thinking about,
he proceeded instead to concentrate on that talk he had had with Mr Propter
about sex. It had begun with his own
puzzled questionings as to what sort of sexual behaviour was normal - not
statistically normal, of course, but normal in that absolute sense in which
perfect vision or unimpaired digestion may be called normal. What sort of sexual behaviour was normal in
that sense of the word? And Mr Propter
had answered: None. But there must be,
he had protested. If good could be
manifested on the animal level, then there must be some kind of sexual
behaviour that was absolutely normal and natural, just as there was an
absolutely normal and natural sort of digestive activity. But man's sexual behaviour, Mr Propter had
answered, wasn't on the same level as digestion. A rat's love-making - yes, that was on
the same level as digestion; for the entire process was instinctive; in other
words, was controlled by the physiological intelligence of the body - the same
physiological intelligence as correlated the actions of heart and lungs and
kidneys, as regulated temperature, as nourished the muscles and made them do
the work demanded of them by the central nervous system. Men's bodily activities were controlled by
the same physiological intelligence and it was that intelligence which, on the
animal level, manifested good. In human
beings, sexual behaviour was almost completely outside the jurisdiction of this
physiological intelligence. It
controlled only the cellular activities which made sexual behaviour
possible. All the rest was
non-instinctive and took place on the strictly human level of
self-consciousness. Even when men
thought that they were being most exclusively animal in their sexuality, they
were still on the human level. Which
meant that they were still self-conscious, still dominated by words - and where
there were words, there, of necessity, were memories and wishes, judgements and
imaginations. There, inevitably, were
the past and the future, the actual and the fantastic; regret and anticipation;
good and evil; the creditable and the discreditable; the beautiful and the
ugly. Among men and women, even the most
apparently bestial acts of eroticism were associated with some or all of these
non-animal factors - factors which were injected into every human situation by
the existence of language. This meant
that there was no one type of human sexuality that could be called 'normal' in
the sense in which one could say that there was a normality of vision or
digestion. In that sense, all
kinds of human sexuality were strictly abnormal. The different kinds of sexual behaviour could
not be judged by referring them to an absolute natural norm. They could only be judged in reference to the
ultimate aims of each individual and the results observed in each case. Thus, if an individual wanted to be well
thought of in any given society, he or she could safely regard as 'normal' the
type of sexual behaviour currently tolerated by that local religion and
approved by the 'best people'. But there
were some individuals who cared little for the judgement of an angry God or
even of the best people. Their principal
desire was for intense and reiterated stimulation of their senses and their
feelings. For these, it was obvious,
'normality' in sexual behaviour would be quite different from what it was for
the more social-minded. Then there would
be all the kinds of sexuality 'normal' to those desirous of making the best of
both worlds - the personal world of sensations and emotions, and the social world
of moral and religious conventions. The
'normalities' of Tartuffe and Pecksniff; of the clergymen who can't keep away
from schoolgirls, the cabinet ministers with a secret mania for handsome
youths. And, finally, there were those
who were concerned neither to get on in society, nor to placate the local
deity, nor to enjoy repeated emotional and sensuous stimulations, but whose
chief preoccupation was with enlightenment and liberation, with the problem of
transcending personality, of passing from the human level to the level of
eternity. Their conceptions of
'normality' in sexual behaviour would not resemble those of the men and women
in any of our other categories.
From the
concrete tennis-court the children of the Chinese cook were flying kites in the
shape of birds and equipped with little whistles, so that they warbled
plaintively in the wind. The cheerful
quacking sound of Cantonese drifted down to Pete's ears. Across the Pacific, he reflected, millions
upon millions of such children had died already or were dying. Below them, in the Sacred Grotto, stood the
plaster figure of Our Lady. Pete thought
of Virginia kneeling in white shorts and a yachting-cap, of the abusive
eloquence of Reverend Schlitz, of Dr Obispo's jokes, of Alexis Carrel on the
subject of Lourdes, of Lee's History of the Inquisition, of Tawney on
the relationship between Protestantism and Capitalism, of Niemöller and John
Knox and Torquemada and that Sister of Mercy and again of Virginia, and finally
of Mr Propter as the only person he knew who could make some sense out of the
absurd, insane, diabolical confusion of it all.
CHAPTER SIX
Somewhat to Jeremy's disappointment, Dr Obispo was not
at all mortified by the information that his ideas had been anticipated in the
eighteenth century.
'I'd like
to hear some more about your Fifth Earl,' he said, as they glided down into the
cellars with the Vermeer. 'You say he
lived to ninety?'
'More
than ninety,' Jeremy answered.
'Ninety-six or seven, I forget which.
And died in the middle of a scandal, what's more.'
'What
sort of scandal?'
Jeremy
coughed and patted the top of his head.
'The usual sort,' he fluted.
'You
mean, the old bozo was still at it?' Dr Obispo asked incredulously.
'Still at
it,' Jeremy repeated. 'There's a passage
about the affair in the unpublished papers of Greville. He died just in time. They were actually on the point of arresting
him.'
'What
for?'
Jeremy
twinkled again and coughed. 'Well,' he
said slowly and in his most Cranford-like manner, 'it seems that he had a
tendency to take his pleasures rather homicidally.'
'You
mean, he'd killed someone.'
'Not
actually killed,' Jeremy answered: 'just damaged.'
Dr Obispo
was rather disappointed, but consoled himself almost immediately by the
reflection that, at ninety-six, even damage was pretty creditable. 'I'd like to look into this a little
further,' he added.
'Well,
the notebook's at your disposal,' said Jeremy politely.
Dr Obispo
thanked him. Together they walked
towards Jeremy's work-room.
'The
handwriting's rather difficult,' said Jeremy as they entered. 'I think it might be easier if I read it
aloud to you.'
Dr Obispo
protested that he didn't want to waste Jeremy's time; but as the other was
anxious to find an excuse for putting off to another occasion the wearisome
task of sorting papers that didn't interest him, the protest was
out-protested. Jeremy insisted on being
altruistic. Dr Obispo thanked him and
settled down to listen. Jeremy took his
eyes out of their native element for long enough to polish his spectacles, then
began to re-read aloud the passage he had been reading that morning when the
bell rang for lunch.
'"It
is to be found in the mud,"' he concluded, '"and only awaits a skilful
Angler."'
Dr Obispo
chuckled. 'You might almost use it as a
definition of science,' he said. 'What
is science? Science is angling in the
mud - angling for immortality and for anything else that may happen to turn
up.' He laughed again and added that he
liked the old bastard.
Jeremy
went on reading.
'"August
1796. Today my gabbling niece Caroline
reproached me with what she called the Inconsistency of my Conduct. A man who is humane with the Horses in his
stables, the Deer in his park and the Carp in his fishponds should show his
Consistency by being more sociable than I am, more tolerant of the company of
Fools, more charitable towards the poor and humble. To which I answered by remarking that the
word, Man, is the general Name applied to successions of inconsistent Conduct,
having their source within a two-legged and featherless Body, and that such
words as Caroline, John and the like are the proper names applied to particular
successions of inconsistent Conduct within particular Bodies. The only Consistency exhibited by the mass of
Mankind is a Consistency of Inconsistency.
In other words, the nature of any particular succession of inconsistent
Conduct depends upon the history of the individual and his ancestors. Each succession of Inconsistencies is
determined and obeys the Laws imposed upon it by its own antecedent
Circumstances. A Character may be said
to be consistent in the sense that its Inconsistencies are predestined and
cannot pass beyond the boundaries ordained for it. The Consistency demanded by such Fools as
Caroline is of quite another kind. These
reproach us because our successive Acts are not consistent with some
arbitrarily selected set of Prejudices, or ridiculous code of rules, such as
the Hebrew, the Gentleman-like, the Iroquois or the Christian. Such Consistency is not to be achieved, and
the attempt to achieve it results only in Imbecility or Hypocrisy. Consider, I said to Caroline, your own
Conduct. What Consistency, pray, do you
find between your conversations with the Dean upon Redemption and your
Draconian birchings of the younger Maids? between your conspicuous charities
and the setting of man-traps on your estates? between your appearances at Court
and your chaise percée? or between divine service on Sunday morning and
the pleasures enjoyed on Saturday night with your husband and on Friday or
Thursday, as all the world suspects, with a certain Baronet who shall be
nameless? But before I had concluded my
final question, Caroline had left the room."'
'Poor
Caroline,' said Dr Obispo, with a laugh.
'Still, she got what she asked for.'
Jeremy
read out the next entry.
'"December
1796. After this second attack of
pulmonary congestion, Convalescence has come more slowly than before and
advanced less far. I hang here suspended
above the pit as though by a single thread, and the substance of that thread is
Misery."'
With an
elegantly bent little finger, Dr Obispo flicked the ash of his cigarette on to
the floor.
'One of
those pharmaceutical tragedies,' he commented.
'With a course of thiamine chloride and some testosterone I could have
made him as happy as a sandboy. Has it
ever struck you,' he added, 'what a lot of the finest romantic literature is
the result of bad doctoring?
I
could lie down like a tired child
And
weep away this life of care.
Lovely! But if
they'd known how to clear up poor Shelley's chronic tuberculous pleurisy it
would never have been written. Lying
down like a tired child and weeping life away happens to be one of the most
characteristic symptoms of chronic tuberculous pleurisy. And most of the other Weltschmerz boys
were either sick men or alcoholics or dope addicts. I could have prevented every one of them from
writing as he did.' Dr Obispo looked at
Jeremy with a wolfish smile that was almost childlike in the candour of its
triumphant cynicism. 'Well, let's hear
how the old boy gets over his troubles.'
'"December,
1796,"' Jeremy read our. '"The prowlings of my attendant hyenas
became so intolerable to me that yesterday I resolved to put an end to
them. When I asked them to leave me
alone in the future, Caroline and John protested their more than filial
Affection. In the end I was forced to
say that, unless they were gone by noon today, I would order my Steward to
bring a score of men and eject them from my House. This morning from my window, I watched them
take their departure."'
The next
note was dated January 11th, 1797.
'"This year the anniversary of my birth calls up Thoughts more
gloomy than ever before. I am too weary
to record them. The day being fine and
remarkably warm for the Season, I had myself carried in my chair to the
fishponds. The bell was rung, and the
Carp at once came hurrying to be fed.
The spectacle of the brute Creation provides me with almost my sole
remaining pleasure. The stupidity of the
Brutes is without pretensions and their malignity depends on Appetite and is
therefore only intermittent. Men are
systematically and continuously cruel, while their Follies are justified in the
names of Religion and Politics, and their Ignorance is muffled up in the
pompous garments of Philosophy.
'"Meanwhile,
as I watched the fishes pushing and jostling for their dinner, like a crowd of
Divines in search of Preferment, my Thoughts returned to the perplexing
Question upon which I have so often speculated in the past. Why should a man die at three-score years and
ten when a Fish can retain its Youth for two or three centuries? I have debated with myself a number of possible
answers. There was a time, for example,
when I thought that the longer life of Carp and Pike might be due to the
superiority of their Watery Element over our Air. But the lives of some subaqueous Creatures
are short, while those of certain Birds exceed the human span.
'"Again,
I have asked myself if the Fish's longer years might not be due to its peculiar
mode of begetting and bearing its young.
But again I am met by fatal Objections.
The Males of Parrots and Ravens do not onanize, but copulate; the
females of Elephants do not lay eggs but bear their young, if we are to believe
M. de Buffon, for a period of not less than four and twenty months. But Parrots, Ravens and Elephants are
long-lived Creatures; from which we must conclude that the Brevity of human
Life is due to other Causes than the manner in which Men beget and Females
reproduce their Kind.
'"The
only Hypotheses to which I can see no manifest Objections are these: the Diet
of such fish as Carp and Pike contains some substance which preserves their
Bodies from the Decay which overtakes the greater number of Creatures even
while they are alive; alternatively the substance which prevents Decay is to be
found within the Body of the Fish, especially, it would be reasonable to guess,
in the Stomach, Liver, Bowels and other Organs of Concoction and
Assimilation. In the short-lived
animals, such as Man, the Substances preventive of Decay must be presumed to be
lacking. The question then arises
whether these Substances can be introduced into the human Body from that of the
Fish. History does not record any
remarkable instances of longevity among the Ichthyophagi, nor have I ever
observed that the Inhabitants of sea ports and other places where there is an
abundance of Fish were specially long-lived.
But we need not conclude from this that the Substance preventive of
Decay can never be conveyed from Fish to Man.
For Man cooks his Food before eating it, and we know by a thousand
instances that the application of Heat profoundly modifies the nature of many
Substances; moreover, he throws away, as unfit for his Consumption, precisely
those Organs of the Fish in which it is most reasonable to assume that the
Substance preventive of Decay is contained.'"
'Christ!'
said Dr Obispo, unable to contain himself any longer. 'Don't tell me that old buzzard is going to
eat raw fish-guts!'
Bright
behind their bifocals, Jeremy's eyes had darted down to the bottom of the page
and were already at the top of the next.
'That's exactly what he is doing,' he cried delightedly. 'Listen to this: "My first three
attempts provoked an uncontrollable retching; at the fourth I contrived to
swallow what I had placed in my mouth, but within two or three minutes my
triumph was cut short by an access of vomiting.
It was only after the ninth or tenth essay that I was able to swallow
and retain even a few spoonfuls of the nauseating mincemeat."'
'Talk of
courage!' said Dr Obispo. 'I'd rather go
through an air-raid than that.'
Jeremy,
meanwhile, had not so much as raised his eyes from the book.
'"It
is now a month,"' he said, '"since I began to test the truth of my
Hypothesis, and I am now ingesting each day not less than six ounces of the
raw, triturated Viscera of freshly opened Carp."'
'And the
fish,' said Dr Obispo, slowly shaking his head, 'has a greater variety of
parasitic worms than any other animal.
It makes my blood run cold even to hear about it.'
'You
needn't worry,' said Jeremy, who had gone on reading. 'His Lordship does nothing but get better and
better. Here's a "singular
accession of Strength and Vigour during the month of March." Not to mention "Revival of appetite and
Improved memory and powers of ratiocination." I like that ratiocination,' Jeremy put in
appreciatively. 'Such a nice period
piece, don't you think? A real
Chippendale word!' He went on reading to
himself, and after a little silence announced triumphantly: 'By April he's
riding again "an hour on the bay gelding every afternoon." And the dose of what he calls his
"visceral and stercoraceous pap" has been raised to ten ounces a
day.'
Dr Obispo
jumped up from his chair and began to walk excitedly up and down the room. 'Damn it all!' he shouted. 'This is more than a joke. This is serious. Raw fish-guts; intestinal flora; prevention
of sterol poisoning; and rejuvenation.
Rejuvenation!' he repeated.
'The
Earl's more cautious than you are,' said Jeremy. 'Listen to this. "Whether I owe my recovery to the Carp,
to the Return of Spring, or to the Vis medicatrix Naturĉ, I am not yet
able to determine."'
Dr Obispo
nodding approvingly. 'That's the right
spirit,' he said.
'"Time,"'
Jeremy continued, '"will show; that is, if I can force it to show, which I
intend to do by persisting in my present Regimen. For I take it that my Hypothesis will be
substantiated if, after persisting in it for some time longer, I shall have
recovered not only my former state of Health, but a measure of Vigour not
enjoyed since the passing of Youth."'
'Good for
him!' Dr Obispo exclaimed. 'I only wish
old Uncle Jo could look at things in that scientific way. Or, maybe,' he added, suddenly remembering
the Nembutal and Mr Stoyte's childlike faith in his medical omniscience, 'maybe
I don't wish it. It might have its
inconveniences.' He chuckled to himself
over his private joke. 'Well, let's go
on with our case history,' he added.
'In
September he can ride for three hours at a stretch without fatigue,' said
Jeremy. 'And he's renewing his
acquaintance with Greek literature, and thinks very poorly of Plato, I notice. After which we have no entry till 1799.'
'No entry
till 1799!' Dr Obispo repeated indignantly.
'The old bastard! Just when his
case is getting really interesting, he goes and leaves us in the dark.'
Jeremy
looked up from the notebook, smiling. 'Not
entirely in the dark,' he said. 'I'll
read you his first entry after the two years of silence, and you can draw your
own conclusions about the state of his intestinal flora.' He uttered a little cough and began to read
in his Mrs Gaskell manner. '"May 1799.
The most promiscuously abandoned Females, especially among Women of
Quality, are often those to whom an unkind Nature has denied the ordinary
Reason and Excuse for Gallantry. Cut off
by a constitutional Frigidity from the enjoyments of Pleasure, they are in
everlasting rebellion against their Fate.
The power which drives them on to multiply the number of their
Gallantries is not Sensuality, but Hope; not to wish to reiterate the
experience of a familiar Bliss, but rather the aspiration towards a common and
much vaunted Felicity which they themselves have had the misfortune never to
know. To the Voluptuary, the woman of
easy Virtue is often no less obnoxious, though for other reasons, than she
seems to the severe Moralist. God
preserve me in Future from any such Conquests as that which I made this Spring
at Bath!"' Jeremy put down the
book. 'Do you still feel that you've
been left in the dark?' he asked.
CHAPTER SEVEN
With a deafening shriek the electric smoothing-tool
whirled its band of sandpaper against the rough surface of the wood. Bent over the carpenter's bench, Mr Propter
did not hear the sound of Pete's entrance and approach. For a long half-minute the young man stood in
silence, watching him while he moved the smoothing-tool back and forth over the
board before him. There was sawdust,
Pete noticed, in the shaggy eyebrows, and on the sunburnt forehead a black
smear where he had touched his face with oily fingers.
Pete felt
a sudden twinge of compunction. It
wasn't right to spy on a man if he didn't know you were there. It was underhand: you might be seeing
something he didn't want you to see. He
called Mr Propter's name.
The old
man looked up, smiled, and stopped the motor of his little machine.
'Well,
Pete,' he said. 'You're just the man I
want. That is, if you'll do some work
for me. Will you? But I'd forgotten,' he added, interrupting
Pete's affirmative answer, 'I'd forgotten about that heart of yours. These miserable rheumatic fevers! Do you think you ought to?'
Pete
blushed a little; for he had not yet had time to live down a certain sense of
shame in regard to his disability.
'You're not going to make me run the quarter-mile, are you?'
Mr
Propter ignored the jocular question.
'You're sure it's all right?' he insisted, looking with an affectionate
earnestness into the young man's face.
'Quite
sure,' if it's only this sort of thing.'
Pete waved his hand in the direction of the carpenter's bench.
'Honest?'
Pete was
touched and warmed by the other's solicitude.
'Honest!' he affirmed.
'Very
well then,' said Mr Propter, reassured.
'You're hired. Or rather you're
not hired, because you'll be lucky if you get as much as a Coca-Cola for
your work. You're conscribed.'
All the
other people round the place, he went on to explain, were busy. He had been left to run the entire furniture
factory single-handed. And the trouble
was that it had to be run under pressure; three of the migrant families down at
the cabins were still without any chairs or tables.
'Here are
the measurements,' he said, pointing to a typewritten sheet of paper pinned to
the wall. 'And there's the lumber. Now, I'll tell you what I'd like you to do
first,' he added, as he picked up a board and laid it on the bench.
The two
men worked for some time without trying to speak against the noise of their
electric tools. Then there was an
interim of less noisy activity. Too shy
to embark directly upon the subject of his own perplexities, Pete started to
talk about Professor Pearl's new book on population. Forty inhabitants to the square mile for the
entire land area of the planet. Sixteen
acres per head. Take away at least half
for unproductive land, and you were left with eight acres. And with average agricultural methods a human
being could be supported on the produce of two and a half acres. With five and a half acres to spare for every
person, why should a third of the world be hungry?'
'I should
have thought you'd have discovered the answer in Spain,' said Mr Propter. 'They're hungry because man cannot live by
bread alone.'
'What has
that got to do with it?'
'Everything,'
Mr Propter answered. 'Men can't live by
bread alone, because they need to feel that their life has a point. That's why they take to idealism. But it's a matter of experience and
observation that most idealism leads to war, persecution and mass
insanity. Man cannot live by bread
alone; but if he chooses to nourish his mind on the wrong kind of spiritual
food, he won't even get bread. He won't
even get bread, because he'll be so busy killing or preparing to kill his
neighbours in the name of God, or Country, or Social Justice, that he won't be
able to cultivate his fields. Nothing
could be simpler or more obvious. But at
the same time,' Mr Propter concluded, 'nothing is unfortunately more certain
than that most people will go on choosing their own destruction.'
He turned
on the current, and once more the smoothing-tool set up its rasping
shriek. There was another cessation of
talk.
'In a
climate like this,' said Mr Propter, in the next interval of silence, 'and with
all the water that'll be available when the Colorado River aqueduct starts
running next year, you could do practically anything you liked.' He unplugged the smoothing tool and went to
fetch a drill. 'Take a township of a
thousand inhabitants; give it three or four thousand acres of land and a good
system of producers' and consumers' co-operatives: it could feed itself
completely; it could supply about two-thirds of its other needs on the spot;
and it could produce a surplus to exchange for such things as it couldn't
produce itself. You could cover the
State with such townships. That is,' he
added, smiling rather mournfully, 'that is, if you could get the permission
from the banks and a supply of people intelligent and virtuous enough to run a
genuine democracy.'
'You
certainly wouldn't get the banks to agree,' said Pete.
'And you
probably couldn't find more than quite a few of the right people,' Mr Propter
added. 'And of course nothing's more
disastrous than starting a social experiment with the wrong people. Look at all the efforts to start communities
in this country. Robert Owen, for
example, and the Fourierists and the rest of them. Dozens of social experiments and they all
failed. Why? Because the men in charge didn't choose their
people. There was no entrance
examination and no novitiate. They
accepted anyone who came along. That's
what comes of being unduly optimistic about human beings.'
He
started the drill and Pete took his turn with the smoothing-tool.
'Do you
think one oughtn't to be optimistic?' the young man asked.
Mr
Propter smiled. 'What a curious
question!' he answered. 'What would you
say about a man who installed a vacuum pump in a fifty-foot well? Would you call him an optimist?'
'I'd call
him a fool.'
'So would
I,' said Mr Propter. 'And that's the
answer to your question; a man's a fool if he's optimistic about any situation
in which experience has shown that there's no justification for optimism. When Robert Owen took in a crowd of
defectives and incompetents and habitual crooks, and expected them to organize
themselves into a new and better sort of human society, he was just a damned
fool.'
There was
silence for a time while Pete did some sawing.
'I suppose
I've been too optimistic,' the young man said reflectively, when it was over.
Mr
Propter nodded. 'Too optimistic in
certain directions,' he agreed. 'And at
the same time too pessimistic in others.'
'For
instance?' Pete questioned.
'Well, to
begin with,' said Mr Propter, 'too optimistic about social reforms. Imagining that good can be fabricated by
mass-production methods. But,
unfortunately, good doesn't happen to be that sort of commodity. Good is a matter of moral craftsmanship. It can't be produced except by
individuals. And, of course, if
individuals don't know what good consists in, or don't wish to work for it,
then it won't be manifested, however perfect the social machinery. There!' he added, in another tone, and blew
the sawdust out of the hole he had been drilling. 'Now for these chair-legs and battens.' He crossed the room and began to adjust the
lathe.
'And what
do you think I've been too pessimistic about?' Pete asked.
Mr
Propter answered, without looking up from his work: 'About human nature.'
Pete was
surprised. 'I'd have expected you to say
I was too optimistic about human nature,' he said.
'Well, of
course, in certain respects that's true,' Mr Propter agreed. 'Like most people nowadays, you're insanely
optimistic about people as they are, people living exclusively on the human
level. You seem to imagine that people
can remain as they are and yet be the inhabitants of a world conspicuously
better than the world we live in. But
the world we live in is a consequence of what men have been and a projection of
what they are now. If men continue to be
like what they are now and have been in the past, it's obvious that the world
they live in can't become better. If you
imagine it can, you're wildly optimistic about human nature. But, on the other hand, you're wildly
pessimistic if you imagine that men and women are condemned by their nature to
pass their whole lives on the strictly human level. Thank God,' he said emphatically, 'they're
not. They have it in their power to
climb out and up, on to the level of eternity.
No human society can become conspicuously better than it is now, unless
it contains a fair proportion of individuals who know that their humanity isn't
the last word and who consciously attempt to transcend it. That's why one should be profoundly
pessimistic about the things most people are optimistic about - such as applied
science, and social reform, and human nature as it is in the average man or
woman. And that's also why one should be
profoundly optimistic about the things they're so pessimistic about that they
don't even know it exists - I mean, the possibility of transforming and
transcending human nature. Not by
evolutionary growth, not in some remote future, but at any time - here and now,
if you like - by the use of properly directed intelligence and goodwill.'
Tentatively
he started the lathe, then stopped it again for further adjustments.
'It's the
kind of pessimism and the kind of optimism you find in all the great
religions,' he added. 'Pessimism about
the world at large and human nature as it displays itself in the majority of
men and women. Optimism about the things
that can be achieved by anyone who wants to and knows how.' He started the lathe again and, this time,
kept it going.
'You know
the pessimism of the New Testament,' he went on through the noise of the
machine. 'Pessimism about the mass of
mankind: many are called, few chosen.
Pessimism about weakness and ignorance: from those that have not shall
be taken away even that which they have.
Pessimism about life lived on the ordinary human level; for that life
must be lost if the other eternal life is to be gained. Pessimism about even the highest forms of
worldly morality: there's no access to the kingdom of heaven for anyone whose
righteousness fails to exceed that of the Scribes and Pharisees. But who are the Scribes and Pharisees? Simply the best citizens; the pillars of
society; all right-thinking men. In
spite of which, or rather because of which, Jesus calls them a generation of
vipers. Poor dear Dr Mulge!' he added
parenthetically. 'How pained he'd be if
he ever had the misfortune to meet his Saviour!' Mr Propter smiled to himself over his
work. 'Well, that's the pessimistic side
of the Gospel teaching,' he went on.
'And, more systematically and philosophically, you'll find the same
things set forth in the Buddhist and Hindu scriptures. The world as it is and people on the strictly
human level - they're beyond hope: that's the universal verdict. Hope begins only when human beings start to
realize that the kingdom of heaven, of whatever other name you care to give it,
is within and can be experienced by anybody who's prepared to take the
necessary trouble. That's the optimistic
side of Christianity and the other-world religions.'
Mr
Propter stopped the lathe, took out the chair-leg he had been turning and put
another in its place.
'It isn't
the sort of optimism they teach you in the liberal churches,' said Pete,
thinking of his transition period between Reverend Schlitz and militant
anti-fascism.
'No, it
isn't,' Mr Propter agreed. 'What they
teach you in liberal churches hasn't got anything to do with Christianity or
any other realistic religion. It's
mainly drivel.'
'Drivel!'
'Drivel,'
Mr Propter repeated. 'Early
twentieth-century humanism seasoned with nineteenth-century
evangelicalism. What a combination! Humanism affirms that good can be achieved on
a level where it doesn't exist and denies the fact of eternity. Evangelicalism denies the relationship
between causes and effects by affirming the existence of a personal deity who
forgives offences. They're like Jack
Spratt and his wife: between the two of them, they lick the platter clean of
all sense whatsoever. No, I'm wrong,' Mr
Propter added, through the buzz of the machine, 'not all sense. The humanists don't talk of more than one
race, and the evangelicals only worship one God. It's left to the patriots to polish off that
last shred of sense. The patriots and
the political sectarians. A hundred
mutually exclusive idolatries.
"There are many gods and the local bosses are their respective
prophets." The amiable silliness of
the liberal churches is good enough for quiet times; but note that it's always
supplemented by the ferocious lunacies of nationalism for use in times of
crisis. And those are the philosophies
young people are brought up on. The
philosophies your optimistic elders expect you to reform the world with.' Mr Propter paused for a moment, then added,
'"As a man sows, so shall he reap.
God is not mocked." Not
mocked,' he repeated. 'But people simply
refuse to believe it. They go on
thinking they can cock a snook at the nature of things and get away with
it. I've sometimes thought of writing a
little treatise, like a cook-book, "One Hundred Ways of Mocking God"
I'd call it. And I'd take a hundred
examples from history and contemporary life, illustrating what happens when
people undertake to do things without paying regard to the nature of
reality. And the book would be divided
into sections, such as "Mocking God in Agriculture," "Mocking
God in Politics," "Mocking God in Education," "Mocking God
in Philosophy," "Mocking God in Economics." It would be an instructive little book. But a bit depressing,' Mr Propter added.
CHAPTER EIGHT
The news that the Fifth Earl had had three
illegitimate children at the age of eighty-one was announced in the notebook
with a truly aristocratic understatement.
No boasting, no self-congratulation.
Just a brief, quiet statement of the facts between the record of a
conversation with the Duke of Wellington and a note on the music of
Mozart. One hundred and twenty years
after the event, Dr Obispo, who was not an English gentleman, exulted noisily,
as though the achievement had been his own.
'Three of
them,' he shouted in his proletarian enthusiasm. 'Three! What do you think of that?'
Brought
up in the same tradition as the Fifth Earl, Jeremy thought that it wasn't bad,
and went on reading.
In 1820
the Earl had been ill again, but not severely; and a three months' course of
raw carps' entrails had restored him to his normal health, 'the health,' as he
put it, 'of a man in the flower of his age.'
A year
later, for the first time in a quarter of a century, he visited his nephew and
niece, and was delighted to find that Caroline had become a shrew, that John
was already bald and asthmatic, and that their eldest daughter was so
monstrously fat that nobody would marry her.
On the
news of the death of Bonaparte he had written philosophically that a man must
be a great fool if he could not satisfy his desire for glory, power and
excitement except by undergoing the hardships of war and the tedium of civil
government. '"This language of
polite conversation," he concluded, "reveals with a sufficient clarity
that such exploits as those of Alexander and Bonaparte have their peaceful and
domestic equivalents. We speak of
amorous Adventures, of the Conquest of a desired Female and the Possession
of her Person. For the Man of sense,
such tropes are eloquent indeed.
Considering their significance, he perceives that war and the pursuit of
Empire are wrong because foolish, foolish because unnecessary, and unnecessary
because the satisfactions derivable from Victory and Dominion may be obtained
with vastly less trouble, pain and ennui behind the silken curtains of the
Duchess's Alcove or on the straw Pallet of the Dairy Maid. And if at any time such simple Pleasures
should prove insipid, if, like the antique Hero, he should find himself crying
for new Worlds to conquer, then by the offer of a supplementary guinea, or in
very many instances, as I have found, gratuitously, by the mere elicitation of
the latent Desire for Humiliation and even Pain, a man may enjoy the privilege
of using the Birch, the Manacles, the Cage and any other such Emblems of
absolute Power as the Fancy of the Conqueror may suggest and the hired Patience
of the Conquered will tolerate or her consenting Taste approve. I recall a remark by Dr Johnson to the effect
that a man is seldom more innocently employed than when making Money. Making Love is an even more innocent
employment than making Money. If
Bonaparte had had the wisdom to vent his Desire for Domination in the Saloons
and Bed Chambers of his native Corsica, he would have expired in Freedom among
his own people, and many hundreds of thousands of men now dead or maimed or
blind would be alive and enjoying the use of their faculties. True, they would doubtless be employing their
Eyes, Limbs and Lives as foolishly and malignantly as those whom Bonaparte did
not murder are employing them today. But
though a Superior Being might applaud the one-time Emperor for having removed
so great a quantity of Vermin from the Earth, the Vermin themselves will always
be of another Opinion. As a mere Man of
Sense, and not a Superior Being, I am on the side of the Vermin."'
'Have you
ever noticed,' said Dr Obispo reflectively, 'the way even the most hard-boiled
people always try to make out their really good. Even this old buzzard - you'd think he
wouldn't care how he rated, so long as he got his fun. But no; he has to write a long screed proving
what a much better man he is than Napoleon.
Which, of course, he is by any reasonable standard. But you wouldn't expect him to go out of his
way to say so.'
'Well,
nobody else was likely to say so,' Jeremy put in.
'So he
had to do it himself,' Dr Obispo concluded.
'Which just proves my point.
Iagos don't exist. People will do
everything Iago did; but they'll never say their villains. They'll construct a beautiful verbal world in
which all their villainies are right and reasonable. I'd hoped that old carp-guts would be an
exception. But he isn't. It's really rather a disappointment.'
Jeremy
giggled with a certain patronizing disdain.
'You'd have liked him to do the Don-Juan-in-hell-act. The calme héros courbé sur sa
rapière. You're more romantic than I
thought.' He turned back to the notebook
and, after a pause, announced that in 1823 the Fifth Earl had spent some hours
with Coleridge and found his conversation deep, but singularly muddy -
"characteristics," he had added, "which are admirable in Fish
Ponds, but deplorable in rational Discourse, which should be pellucid and
always shallow enough for a man to wade through without risk of drowning
himself in an abyss of nonsense."
Jeremy beamed with pleasure.
Coleridge was not a favourite of his.
'When I think of the rot people are still talking about the rubbish that
old dope-addict wrote ...'
Dr Obispo
cut him short. 'Let's hear some more
about the Earl,' he said.
Jeremy
returned to the notebook.
In 1824
the old gentleman was lamenting the passage of the Bill which assimilated the
transportation of slaves to piracy and so made the trade a capital
offence. Henceforward, he would be a
matter of eight or nine thousand a year the poorer. But he consoled himself by thinking of Horace
living in philosophic tranquillity on his Sabine farm.
In 1826
he was deriving his keenest pleasure from a re-perusal of Theocritus and the
company of a young female, called Kate, whom he had made his housekeeper. In the same year, despite the curtailment of
his income, he had been unable to resist the temptation of purchasing and
exquisite 'Assumption of the Virgin' by Murillo.
1827 had
been a year of financial reverses; reverses that were conducted, apparently,
with the death, following an abortion, of a very young maid employed by the
housekeeper as her personal attendant.
The entry in the notebook was brief and obscure; but it seemed to imply
that the girl's parents had had to be paid a very substantial sum.
A little
later, he was unwell again and wrote a long and minute description of the
successive stages of decay in the human corpse, with special reference to the
eyes and lips. A short course of
triturated carp restored him to a more cheerful frame of mind, and in 1828 he
made a voyage to Athens, Constantinople and Egypt.
In 1831
he was in negotiations for the purchase of a house near Farnham.
'That
must be Selford,' Jeremy put in. 'The house
where these things came from.' He
indicated the twenty-seven packing-cases.
'Where the two old ladies are living.'
He continued his reading.
'"The house is old, dark and inconvenient, but stands in
sufficiently extensive Grounds upon an Eminence about the River Wey, whose
southern bank at this point rises almost perpendicularly in a Cliff of yellow
sandstone, to the height of perhaps one hundred and twenty feet. The Stone is soft and easily worked, a
Circumstance which accounts for the existence beneath the house of very
extensive Cellars, which were dug, it would seem, about a Century ago, when the
Vaults were used for the storage of smuggled Spirits and other goods on their
way from the coasts of Hampshire and Sussex to the Metropolis. To allay the fears of his Wife, who dreads to
lose a child in their subterranean meanders, the Farmer who now owns the House
has walled off the greater part of his Cellarage; but even that which remains
presents the appearance of a veritable Catacomb. In Vaults such as these a man could be
assured of all the Privacy required for the satisfaction of even the most
eccentric Tastes."' Jeremy looked
up over the top of his book. 'That sounds
a bit sinister, don't you think?'
Dr Obispo
shrugged his shoulders. 'Nobody can have
enough privacy,' he said emphatically.
'When I think of all the trouble I've had for want of some nice cellars
like the ones you've been reading about ...' He left the sentence unfinished,
and a shadow crossed his face: he was thinking that he couldn't go on giving Jo
Stoyte those Nembutal capsules indefinitely, damn him!
'Well, he
buys the house,' said Jeremy, who had been reading to himself. 'And he has repairs and additions made in the
Gothic manner. And an apartment is
fitted up in the cellars, forty-five feet underground and at the end of a long
passage. And, to his delight, he finds
that there's a subterranean well, and another shaft that goes down to a great
depth and can be used as a privy. And
the place is perfectly dry and has an ample supply of air, and ...'
'But what
does he do down there?' Dr Obispo asked impatiently.
'How
should I know?' Jeremy answered. He ran
his eyes down the page. 'At the moment,'
he went on, 'the old boy's making a speech to the House of Lords in favour of
the Reform Bill.'
'In
favour of it?' said Obispo in surprise.
'"In
the first days of the French Revolution,"' Jeremy read out, '"I
infuriated the adherents of every political Party by saying: 'The Bastille is
fallen; long live the Bastille.'
Forty-three years have elapsed since the occurrence of that singularly
futile Event, and the correctness of my Prognostications has been demonstrated
by the rise of new Tyrannies and the restoration of old ones. It is therefore with perfect Confidence that
I now say: 'Privilege is dead; long live Privilege.' The masses of mankind are incapable of
Emancipation and too inept to direct their own Destinies. Government must always be by Tyrants or
Oligarchs. My opinion of the Peerage and
the landed Gentry is exceedingly low; but their own opinion of themselves must
be even lower than mine. They believe
that the Ballot will rob them of their Power and Privileges, whereas I am
sure that, by the exercise of even such little Prudence and Cunning as
parsimonious Nature has endowed them with, they can with ease maintain
themselves in their present pre-eminence.
This being so, let the Rabble amuse itself by voting. An Election is no more than a gratuitous
Punch and Judy Show, offered by the Rulers in order to distract the attention
of the Ruled."
'How he'd
have enjoyed a modern communist or fascist election!' said Dr Obispo. 'By the way, how old was he when he made this
speech?'
'Let me
see.' Jeremy paused for a moment to make
the calculation, then answered: 'Ninety-four.'
'Ninety-four!'
Dr Obispo repeated. 'Well, if it wasn't
those fish-guts, I don't know what it was.'
Jeremy
turned back to the notebook. 'At the
beginning of 1833 he sees his nephew and niece again, on the occasion of
Caroline's sixty-fifth birthday.
Caroline now wears a red wig, her eldest daughter is dead of cancer, the
younger is unhappy with her husband and is addicted to piety, the son, who is
now a Colonel, has gambling debts which he expects his parents to pay. Altogether, as the Earl remarks, "a most
enjoyable evening."'
'Nothing
about those cellars?' Dr Obispo complained.
'No; but
his housekeeper, Kate, has been ill and he's giving her the carp diet.'
Dr Obispo
showed a renewal of interest. 'And what
happens?' he asked.
Jeremy
shook his head. 'The next entry's about
Milton,' he said.
'Milton?'
exclaimed Dr Obispo in a tone of indignant disgust.
'He says
that Milton's writings prove that religion depends for its existence upon the
picturesque use of intemperate language.'
'He may
be right,' said Dr Obispo irritably.
'But what I want to know is what happened to that housekeeper.'
'She's
evidently alive,' said Jeremy. 'Because
here's a little note in which he complains about the tediousness of too much
female devotion.'
'Tedious!'
Dr Obispo repeated. 'That's putting it
mildly. I've known women who were like
flypaper.'
'He
doesn't seem to have objected to an occasional infidelity. There's a reference here to a young mulatto
girl.' He paused; then, smiling,
'Delicious creature,' he said.
'"She combines the brutish imbecility of the Hottentots with the
malice and cupidity of the European."
After which the old gentleman goes out to dinner at Farnham Castle with
the Bishop of Winchester and finds his claret poor, his port execrable and his
intellectual powers beneath contempt.'
'Nothing
about Kate's health?' Dr Obispo persisted.
'Why
should he talk about it? He takes it for
granted.'
'I'd
hoped he was a man of science,' said Dr Obispo almost plaintively.
Jeremy
laughed. 'You must have very odd ideas
about fifth earls and eleventh barons.
Why on earth should they be men of science?' Dr Obispo was unable to answer. There was a silence, while Jeremy started a
new page. 'Well, I'm damned!' he broke
out. 'He's been reading James Mill's Analysis
of the Human Mind. At
ninety-five. I think that's even more
remarkable than having a rejuvenated housekeeper and a mulatto. "The Common Fool is merely stupid and
ignorant. To be a Great Fool a man must
have much learning and high abilities.
To the everlasting credit of Mr Benthan and his Lieutenants it must be
said that their Folly has always been upon the grandest scale. Mr Mill's Analysis is a veritable
Coliseum of silliness." And the
next note is about the Marquis de Sade.
By the way,' Jeremy interpolated, looking up at Dr Obispo, 'when are you
going to return me my books?'
Dr Obispo
shrugged his shoulders. 'Whenever you
like,' he answered. 'I'm through with
them.'
Jeremy
tried not to show his delight and, with a cough, returned to the notebook. '"The Marquis de Sade,"' he read
aloud, '"was a man of powerful genius, unhappily deranged. In my opinion, an Author would achieve
Perfection if he combined the qualities of the Marquis with those of Bishop
Butler and Sterne."' Jeremy
paused. 'The Marquis, Bishop Butler and
Sterne,' he repeated slowly. 'My word,
you'd have a pretty remarkable book!' He
went on reading. '"October
1833. To degrade oneself is pleasurable
in proportion to the height of the worldly and intellectual Eminence from which
one descends and to which one returns when the act of Degradation is
concluded." That's pretty good,' he
commented, thinking of the Trojan Women and alternate Friday afternoons in
Maida Vale. 'Yes, that's pretty
good. Let me see, where are we? Oh yes.
"The Christians talk much of Pain, but nothing of what they say is
to the point. For the most remarkable
Characteristics of Pain are these: the Disproportion between the enormity of
physical suffering and its often trifling causes; and the manner in which, by
annihilating every faculty and reducing the body to helplessness, it defeats
the Object for which it was apparently devised by Nature: viz. to warn the
sufferer of the approach of Danger, whether from within or without. In relation to Pain, that empty word,
Infinity, comes near to having a meaning.
This is not the case with Pleasure; for Pleasure is strictly finite and
any attempt to extend its boundaries results in its transformation into Pain. For this reason, the infliction of Pleasure
can never be so delightful to the aspiring Mind as the infliction of Pain. To give a finite quantity of Pleasure is a
merely human act; the infliction of the Infinity we call Pain is truly god-like
and divine."'
'The old
bastard's going mystical in his old age,' Dr Obispo complained. 'Almost reminds me of Mr Propter.' He lit a cigarette. There was a silence.
'Listen
to this,' Jeremy suddenly cried in a tone of excitement. '"March 11th, 1834. By the criminal negligence of Kate, Priscilla
has been allowed to escape from the subterranean place of confinement. Bearing as she does upon her Person the
evidence that she has been for some weeks past the subject of my
Investigations, she holds in her hands my Reputation and perhaps even my
Liberty and Life."'
'I
suppose this is what you were talking about before we started reading,' said Dr
Obispo. 'The final scandal. What happened?'
'Well, I
suppose the girl must have told her story.' Jeremy answered, without looking up
from the page before him. 'Otherwise how
do you account for the presence of this "hostile Rabble" he's
suddenly started talking about?
"The Humanity of men and women in inversely proportional to their
Numbers. A Crowd is no more human than
an Avalanche or a Whirlwind. A rabble of
men and women stands lower in the scale of moral and intellectual being than a
herd of Swine or of Jackals."'
Dr Obispo
threw back his head and uttered a peal of his surprisingly loud, metallic
laughter. 'That's exquisite!' he
said. 'Exquisite! You couldn't have a better example of
typically human behaviour. Homo conducting
himself like sub-homo and then being sapiens in order to prove
that he's really super-homo.' He
rubbed his hands together. 'This is really
heavenly!' he said; then added: 'Let's hear what happens now.'
'Well, as
far as I can make out,' said Jeremy, 'they have to send a company of militia
from Guildford to protect the house from the rabble. And a magistrate has issued a warrant for his
arrest; but they're not doing anything for the time being, on account of his
age and position and the scandal of a public trial. Oh, and now they've sent for John and
Caroline. Which makes the old gentleman
wildly angry. But he's helpless. So they arrive at Selford; "Caroline in
her orange wig, and John, at seventy-two, looking at least twenty years older
than I, who was already twenty-four when my Brother, then scarcely of age, had
the imprudence to marry an Attorney's Daughter and the richly merited
misfortune to beget this Attorney's Grandson whom I have always treated with
the Contempt which his low origin and feeble Intellect deserve, but to whom the
negligence of a Strumpet has now given the Power to impose his Will upon
me."'
'One of
those delightful family reunions,' said Dr Obispo. 'But I suppose he doesn't give us any of the
details?'
Jeremy
shook his head. 'No details,' he
said. 'Just an outline of the
negotiations. On March the seventeenth
they tell him that he can avoid prosecution if he makes over his unentailed
property by deed of gift, assigns them the revenues of the entailed estates,
and consents to enter a private asylum.'
'Pretty
stiff conditions!'
'Which he
refuses,' Jeremy continued, 'on the morning of the eighteenth.'
'Good for
him!'
'"Private
madhouses,"' Jeremy read out, '"are private prisons in which,
uncontrolled by Parliament or Judiciary, subject to no inspection by the Police
and closed even to the humanitarian visitations of Philanthropists, hired
Torturers and Gaolers execute the dark designs of family Vengeance and personal
Spite."'
Dr Obispo
clapped his hands with delight. 'There's
another beautiful human touch!' he cried.
'Those humanitarian visitations of philanthropists!' he laughed aloud. 'And hired torturers! It's like a speech by one of the Founding
Fathers. Magnificent! And then one thinks of those slave-ships and
little Miss Priscilla. It's almost as
good as Field-Marshal Goering denouncing unkindness to animals. Hired torturers and gaolers,' he repeated
with relish, as though the phrase were a delicious sweetmeat, slowly melting
upon the palate. 'What's the next move?'
he asked.
'They
tell him he'll be tried, condemned and transported. To which he answers that he prefers
transportation to a private asylum.
"At this it was evident that my precious nephew and niece were
nonplussed. They swore that my treatment
in the Madhouse should be humane. I
answered that I would not accept their word.
John talked of his honour. I
said, An Attorney's honour, no doubt, and spoke of the manner in which a lawyer
sells his convictions for a Fee. Then
they implored me for the good name of the Family to accept their offers. I answered that the good name of the Family
was indifferent to me, but that I had no desire to undergo the Humiliations of
a Public Trial or the pains and discomforts of Transportation. I was ready, I said, to accept any reasonable
alternative to Trial and Transportation; but I would regard no Alternative as
reasonable which did not in some sort guarantee my proper treatment at their
hands. Their word of honour I did not
regard as such a Guarantee; nor could I accept to be placed in an Institution
where I should be entrusted to the care of Doctors and Keepers in the pay of
those whose Interest it was that I should perish with all possible
Celerity. I therefore refused to
subscribe to any Arrangement which left me at their Mercy without placing them
to a corresponding extent at mine."'
'The
principles of diplomacy in a nutshell!' said Dr Obispo. 'If only Chamberlain had understood them a
little better before he went to Munich!
Not that it would have made much difference in the long run,' he added. 'Because, after all, it doesn't really matter
what the politicians do; nationalism will always produce at least one war each
generation. It has done in the past, and
I suppose we can rely on it to do the same in the future. But how does the old gentleman propose to put
his principles into practice? He's at
their mercy all right. How's he going to
put them at his?'
'I don't
know yet,' Jeremy answered from the depths of the recorded past. 'He's gone off on one of his philosophizing
jaunts again.'
'Now?'
said Dr Obispo in astonishment. 'When
he's got a warrant out against him?'
'"There
was a time,'" Jeremy read, '"when I believed that all the Efforts of
Humanity were directed towards a Point located approximately at the Centre of
the female Person. Today I am inclined
to think that Vanity and Avarice play a more considerable part even than Lust
in shaping the course of men's Actions and determining the nature of their
Thoughts." And so on. Where the devil does he get back to the point
again? Perhaps he never does; it would
be just like him. No, here's something:
"March 20th. Today, Robert Parsons,
my Factor, returned from London bringing with him in the Coach, three strong
boxes containing Gold coin and Bank Notes to the value of two hundred and
eighteen thousand pounds, the product of the sale of my Securities and such
Jewels, Plate and works of Art as it was possible to dispose of at such short
notice and for cash. With more time I
could have realized at least three hundred and fifty thousand pounds. This loss I can bear philosophically; for the
sum I have in hand is amply sufficient for my purposes."'
'What
purposes?' asked Dr Obispo.
Jeremy
did not answer for a little while. Then
he shook his head in bewilderment. 'What
on earth is happening now?' he said.
'Listen to this: "My funeral will be conducted with all the Pomp
befitting my exalted Rank and the eminence of my Virtues. John and Caroline were miserly and ungrateful
enough to object to the expense; but I have insisted that my Obsequies shall
cost not a penny less than Four Thousand Pounds. My only Regret is that I shall be unable to
leave my subterranean Retreat to see the Pageantry of Woe and to study the
expression of grief upon the withered faces of the new Earl and his
Countess. Tonight I shall go down with
Kate to our Quarters in the Cellarage; and tomorrow morning the world will hear
the news of my death. The body of an
aged Pauper has already been conveyed hither in Secret from Haslemere, and will
take my place in the Coffin. After the
Interment the New Earl and Countess will proceed at once to Gonister, where
they will take up their Residence, leaving this house untenanted except for
Parsons, who will serve as Caretaker and provide for our material wants. The Gold and Bank Notes brought by Parsons
from London are already bestowed in a subterranean hiding-place known only to
myself, and it has been arranged that, every First of June, so long as I live,
five thousand pounds in cash shall be handed over by myself to John, or to
Caroline, or, in the event of their predeceasing me, to their Heir, or to some
duly authorized Representative of the Family.
By this arrangement, I flatter myself, I fill the Place left vacant by
the Affection they most certainly do not feel." And that's all,' said Jeremy, looking
up. 'There's nothing else. Just two more blank pages, and that's the end
of the book. Not another word of
writing.'
There was
a long silence. Once more Dr Obispo got
up and began to walk about the room.
'And
nobody knows how long the old buzzard lived on?' he said at last.
Jeremy
shook his head. 'Not outside the
family. Perhaps those two old ladies
...'
Dr Obispo
halted in front of him, and banged the table with his fist. 'I'm taking the next boat to England,' he
announced dramatically.
CHAPTER NINE
Today, even the Children's Hospital brought Mr Stoyte
no consolations. The nurses had welcomed
him with their friendliest smiles. The
young house physician encountered in the corridor was flatteringly deferential. The convalescents shouted 'Uncle Jo!' with
all their customary enthusiasm, and, as he paused beside their beds, the faces
of the sick were momentarily illuminated with pleasure. His gifts of toys were received as usual,
sometimes with noisy rapture, sometimes (more touchingly) in the silence of a
happiness speechless with amazement and incredulity. On this round of the various wards, he saw,
as on other days, the pitiful succession of small bodies distorted by scrofula
and paralysis, of small emaciated faces resigned to suffering, of little angels
dying, and martyred innocents and snub-faced imps of mischief tortured into a
reluctant stillness.
Ordinarily
it all made him feel good - like he wanted to cry, but at the same time like he
wanted to shout and be proud: proud of just being human, because these kids
were human and you've never seen anything so brave as they were; and proud that
he had done this thing for them, given them the finest hospital in the State,
and all the best that money could buy.
But today his visit brought none of the customary reactions. He had no impulsion either to cry or to
shout. He felt neither pride, nor the
anguish of sympathy, nor the exquisite happiness that resulted from their
combination. He felt nothing - nothing
except the dull, gnawing misery which had been with him all that day, at the
Pantheon, with Clancy, in his downtown office.
Driving out from the city, he had looked forward to his visit to the
hospital as an asthma patient might look forward to a dose of adrenalin or an
opium-smoker to a long-postponed pipe.
But the looked-for relief had not come.
The kids had let him down.
Taking
his cue from what had happened at the end of previous visits, the porter smiled
at Mr Stoyte as he left the hospital and said something about it being the
finest bunch of great little kids he ever knew.
Mr Stoyte looked at him blankly, nodded without speaking, and passed on.
The
porter watched him go. 'Jeepers
Creepers!' he said to himself, remembering the expression on Mr Stoyte's face.
Mr Stoyte
drove back to the castle feeling as unhappy as he had felt when he left in the
morning. He went up with the Vermeer to
the fourteenth floor; Virginia was not in her boudoir. He went down to the tenth; but she was not in
the billiard-room. He dropped to the
second; but she was being neither manicured nor massaged. In a sudden access of suspicion he descended
to the sub-sub-basement and almost ran to see if she were in the laboratory
with Pete; the laboratory was empty. A
mouse squeaked in its cage, and behind the glass of the aquarium one of the
aged carp glided slowly from shadow into light and from light once more into
green shadow. Mr Stoyte hurried back to
the elevator, shut himself in with the Dutchman's dream of everyday life
mysteriously raised to the pitch of mathematical perfection, and pressed the
topmost of the twenty-three buttons.
Arrived
at his destination, Mr Stoyte slid back the gate of the elevator and looked out
through the glass panel in the second door.
The water
of the swimming-pool was perfectly still.
Between the battlements, the mountains had taken on their evening
richness of golden light and indigo shadow.
The sky was cloudless and transparently blue. A tray with bottles and glasses had been set
on the iron table at the further side of the pool, and behind the table stood
one of the low couches on which Mr Stoyte was accustomed to take his
sun-baths. Virginia was lying on this
couch, as though anaesthetized, her lips parted, her eyes closed, one arm
drooped limply and its hand lying palm upwards on the floor, like a flower
carelessly thrown aside and forgotten.
Half concealed by the table, Dr Obispo, the Claude Bernard of his
subject, was looking down into her face with an expression of slightly amused
scientific curiosity.
In its
first irrepressible uprush, Mr Stoyte's fury came near to defeating its own
homicidal object. With a great effort,
he checked the impulse to shout, to charge headlong out of the elevator, waving
his fists and foaming at the mouth.
Trembling under the internal pressure of pent-up rage and hatred, he
groped in the pocket of his jacket.
Except for a child's rattle and two packets of chewing-gum left over
from his distribution of gifts at the hospital, it was empty. For the first time in months he had forgotten
his automatic.
For a few
seconds Mr Stoyte stood hesitating, undecided what to do. Should he rush out, as he had first been
moved to do, and kill the man with his bare hands? Or should he go down and fetch his gun? In the end, he decided to get the gun. He pressed the button, and the lift dropped
silently down its shaft. Unseeing, Mr
Stoyte glared at the Vermeer; and from her universe of perfected geometrical
beauty the young lady in blue satin turned her head from the open harpsichord
and looked out, past the draped curtain, over the black-and-white tessellated
floor - out through the windows of the picture-frame into that other universe
in which Mr Stoyte and his fellow-creatures had their ugly and untidy being.
Mr Stoyte
ran to his bedroom, opened the drawer in which his handkerchiefs were kept,
rummaged furiously among the silks and cambrics, and found nothing. Then he remembered. Yesterday morning he had worn no jacket. The gun had been in his hip-pocket. Then Pedersen had come to give him his
Swedish exercises. But a gun in the
hip-pocket was uncomfortable if you did things on your back, on the floor. He had taken it out and put it away in the
writing-desk in his study.
Mr Stoyte
ran back to the elevator, went down four floors and ran to the study. The gun was in the top left-hand drawer of the
writing-table; he remembered exactly.
The top
left-hand drawer of the writing-table was locked. So were all the other drawers.
'God damn
that old bitch!' Mr Stoyte shouted as he tugged at the handles.
Thoughtful
and conscientious in every detail, Miss Grogram, his secretary, always locked
up everything before she went home.
Still
cursing Miss Grogram, whom he hated at the moment almost as bitterly as he
hated that swine there on the roof, Mr Stoyte hurried back to the
elevator. The gate was locked. During his absence in the study, somebody
must have pressed the recall button on some other floor. Through the closed door he could hear the
faint hum of the machinery. The elevator
was in use. God only knew how long he
would have to wait.
Mr Stoyte
let out an inarticulate bellow, rushed along the corridor, turned to the right,
opened a swing-door, turned to the right again and was at the gate of the
service lift. He seized the handle and
pulled. It was locked. He pressed the recall button. Nothing happened. The service elevator was also in use.
Mr Stoyte
ran back along the corridor, through the swing-door, then through another
swing-door. Spiralling round a central
well that went down two hundred feet into the depth of the cellars, the
staircase mounted and descended. Mr
Stoyte started to climb. Breathless
after only two floors, he ran back to the elevators. The service elevator was still in use; but
the other responded to the call of the button.
Dropping from somewhere overhead, it came to a halt in front of
him. The locked door unlocked
itself. He pulled it open and stepped
in. The young lady in satin still
occupied her position of equilibrium in a perfectly calculated universe. The distance of her left eye from the left
side of the picture was to its distance from the right side as one is to the
square root of two minus one; and the distance of the same eye from the bottom
of the picture was equal to its distance from the left side. As for the knot of ribbons on her right
shoulder - that was precisely at the corner of an imaginary square with the
sides equal to the longer of the two golden sections into which the base of the
picture was divisible. A deep fold in
the satin skirt indicated the position of the right side of this square, and
the lid of the harpsichord marked the top.
The tapestry in the upper right-hand corner stretched exactly one-third
of the way across the picture and had its lower edge at a height equal to the
base. Pushed forward by the brown and
dusky ochres of the background, the blue satin encountered the black-and-white
marble slabs of the floor and was pushed back, to be held, suspended in
mid-picture space, like a piece of steel between two magnets of opposite sign. Within the frame nothing could have been
different; the stillness of that world was not the mere immobility of old paint
and canvas; it was also the spirited repose of consummated perfection.
'The old
bitch!' Mr Stoyte kept growling to himself, and then, turning in memory from
his secretary to Dr Obispo, 'The swine!'
The
elevator came to a stop. Mr Stoyte
darted out and hurried along the corridor to Miss Grogham's empty office. He thought he knew where she kept the keys;
but it turned out that he was wrong. They
were somewhere else. But where? where?
where? Frustration churned up his rage
into a foam of frenzy. He opened drawers
and flung their contents on the floor, he scattered the neatly filed papers
about the room, he overturned the dictaphone, he even went to the trouble of
emptying the bookshelves and upsetting the potted cyclamen and the bowl of
Japanese goldfish which Miss Grogham kept on the windowsill. Red scales flashed among the broken glass and
the reference-books. One gauzy tail was
black with spilt ink. Mr Stoyte picked
up a bottle of glue and, with all his might, threw it down among the dying
fish.
'Bitch!'
he shouted. 'Bitch!'
Then
suddenly he saw the keys, hanging in a neat little bunch on a hook near the
mantelpiece, where, he suddenly remembered, he had seen them a thousand times
before.
'Bitch!'
he shouted with redoubled fury as he seized them. He hurried towards the door, pausing only to
push the typewriter off the table. It
fell with a crash into the chaos of torn paper and glue and goldfish. That would serve the old bitch right, Mr
Stoyte reflected with a kind of maniacal glee as he ran towards the elevator.
CHAPTER TEN
Barcelona had fallen.
But even
if it had not fallen, even if it had never been besieged, what then?
Like every
other community, Barcelona was part machine, part sub-human organism, part
nightmare-huge projection and embodiment of men's passions and insanities -
their avarice, their pride, their lust for power, their obsession with
meaningless words, their worship of lunatic ideals.
Captured
or uncaptured, every city and nation has its being on the plane of the absence
of God. Has its being on the plane of
the absence of God, and is therefore foredoomed to perpetual
self-stultification, to endlessly reiterated attempts at self-destruction.
Barcelona
had fallen. But even the prosperity of
human societies is a continual process of gradual or catastrophic falling. Those who build up the structures of
civilization are the same as those who undermine the structures of
civilization. Men are their own
termites, and must remain their own termites for just so long as they persist
in being only men.
The
towers rise, the palaces, the temples, the dwellings, the workshops; but the
heart of every beam is gnawed to dust even as it is laid, the joists are
riddled, the floors eaten away under the feet.
What
poetry, what statues - but on the brink of the Peloponnesian War! And now the Vatican is painted - just in time
for the sack of Rome. And the Eroica is
composed - but for a hero who turns out to be just another bandit. And the nature of the atom is elucidated - by
the same physicists as volunteer in war-time to improve the arts of murder.
On the
plane of the absence of God, men can do nothing else except destroy what they
have built - destroy even while they build - build with the elements of
destruction.
Madness
consists in not recognizing the facts; in making wishes the father of thoughts;
in conceiving things to be other than they really are; in trying to realize
desired ends by means which countless previous experiments have shown to be
inappropriate.
Madness
consists, for example, in thinking of oneself as a soul, a coherent and
enduring human entity. But, between the
animal below and the spirit above there is nothing on the human level except a
swarm of constellated impulses and sentiments and notions; a swarm brought
together by the accidents of heredity and language; a swarm of incongruous and
often contradictory thoughts and desires.
Memory and the slowly changing body constitute a kind of spatio-temporal
cage, within which the swarm is enclosed.
To talk of it as though it were a coherent and enduring 'soul' is
madness. On the strictly human level
there is no such thing as a soul.
Thought-constellations,
feeling-arrangements, desire-patterns.
Each of these has been built up and is strictly conditioned by the
nature of its fortuitous origin. Our
'souls' are so little 'us' that we cannot even form the remotest conception how
'we' should react to the universe, if we were ignorant of language in general,
or even of our own particular language.
The nature of our 'souls' and of the world they inhabit would be
entirely different from what it is, if we had never learnt to talk, or if we
had learnt to talk Eskimo instead of English.
Madness consists, among other things, is imagining that our 'soul'
exists apart from the language our nurses happen to have taught us.
Every
psychological pattern is determined; and, within the cage of flesh and memory,
the total swarm of such patterns is no more free than any of its members. To talk of freedom in connection with acts
which in reality are determined is madness.
On the strictly human level no acts are free. By their insane refusal to recognize facts as
they are, men and women condemn themselves to have their desires stultified and
their lives distorted or extinguished.
No less than the cities and nations of which they are members, men and
women are for ever falling, for ever destroying what they have built and are building. But whereas cities and nations obey the laws
that come into play whenever large numbers are involved, individuals do
not. Or rather need not; for though in
actual fact most individuals allow themselves to be subjected to these laws,
they are under no necessity to do so.
For they are under no necessity to remain exclusively on the human level
of existence. It is in their power to
pass from the level of the absence of God to that of God's presence. Each member of the psychological swarm is
determined; and so is the conduct of the total swarm. But beyond the swarm, and yet containing and
interpenetrating it, lies eternity, ready and waiting to experience
itself. But if eternity is to experience
itself within the temporal and spatial cage of any individual human being, the
swarm we call the 'soul' must voluntarily renounce the frenzy of its activity,
must make room, as it were, for the other timeless consciousness, must be
silent to render possible the emergence of profounder silence. God is completely present only in the
complete absence of what we call our humanity.
No iron necessity condemns the individual to the futile torment of being
merely human. Even the swarm we call the
soul has it in its power temporarily to inhibit its insane activity, to absent
itself, if only for a moment, in order that, if only for a moment, God may be
present. But let eternity experience
itself, let God be sufficiently often present in the absence of human desires
and feelings and preoccupations: the result will be a transformation of the
life which must be lived, in the intervals, on the human level. Even the swarm of our passions and opinions
is susceptible to the beauty of eternity; and, being susceptible, becomes dissatisfied
with its own ugliness; and, being dissatisfied, undertakes to change
itself. Chaos gives place to order - not
the arbitrary, purely human order that comes from the subordination of the
swarm to some lunatic 'ideal', but an order that reflects the real order of the
world. Bondage gives place to liberty -
for choices are no longer dictated by the chance occurrences of earlier
history, but are made teleologically and in the light of a direct insight into
the nature of things. Violence and mere
inertia give place to peace - for violence is the manic, and inertia the
depressive, phase of that cyclic insanity, which consists in regarding the ego
or its social projections as real entities.
Peace is the serene activity which springs from the knowledge that our
'souls' are illusory and their creations insane, that all beings are
potentially united in eternity.
Compassion is an aspect of peace and a result of the same act of
knowledge.
Walking
at sunset up the castle hill, Pete kept thinking with a kind of tranquil
exultation of all the things Mr Propter had said to him. Barcelona had fallen. Spain, England, France, Germany, America -
all were falling; falling even at such times as they seemed to be rising;
destroying what they built in the very act of building. But any individual has it in his power to
refrain from falling, to stop destroying himself. The solidarity with evil is optional, not
compulsory.
On their
way out of the carpenter's shop Pete had brought himself to ask Mr Propter if
he would tell him what he ought to do.
Mr
Propter had looked at him intently. 'If
you want it,' he had said, 'I mean, if you really want it ...'
Pete had
nodded without speaking.
The sun
had set; and now the twilight was like the embodiment of peace - the peace of
God, Pete said to himself, as he looked across the plain to the distant
mountains, the peace that passes all understanding. To part with such loveliness was
unbearable. Entering the castle, he went
straight to the elevator, recalled the cage from somewhere up aloft, shut himself
up with the Vermeer and pressed the highest of the buttons. Up there, at the top of the keep, he would be
at the very heart of this celestial peace.
The
elevator came to a halt. He opened the
gates and stepped out. The swimming-pool
reflected a luminous tranquillity. He
turned his eyes from the water to the sky, and from the sky to the mountains;
then walked round the pool in order to look down over the battlements on the
further side.
'Go
away!' a muffled voice suddenly said.
Pete
started violently, turned and saw Virginia lying in the shadow almost at his
feet.
'Go
away,' the voice repeated. 'I hate you.'
'I'm
sorry,' he stammered. 'I didn't know
...'
'Oh, it's
you.' She opened her eyes, and in the
dim light he was able to see that she had been crying. 'I thought it was Sig. He went to get a comb for my hair.' She was silent for a little; then suddenly
she burst out, 'I'm so unhappy, Pete.'
'Unhappy?' The word and her tone had utterly shattered
the peace of God. In an anguish of love
and anxiety he sat down beside her on the couch. (Under her bathrobe, he couldn't help
noticing, she didn't seem to be wearing anything at all.) 'Unhappy?'
Virginia
covered her face with her hands and began to sob. 'Not even Our Lady,' she gasped in an
incoherency of grief. 'I can't even tell
her. I feel so mean ...'
'Darling!'
he said in a voice of entreaty, as though imploring her to be happy. He began to stroke her hair. 'My darling!'
Suddenly
there was a violent commotion on the further side of the pool; a crash as the
elevator gates were flung back; a rush of feet; an inarticulate yell of
rage. Pete turned his head and was in
time to see Mr Stoyte rushing towards them, holding something in his hand, something
that might almost have been an automatic pistol.
He had
half risen to his feet, when Mr Stoyte fired.
Arriving
two or three minutes later with the comb for Virginia's hair, Dr Obispo found
the old man on his knees, trying, with a pocket-handkerchief, to stanch the
blood that was still pouring out of the two wounds, one clean and small, the
other cavernous, which the bullet had made as it passed through Pete's head.
Crouching
in the shadow of the battlements, the Baby was praying.
'Holy-Mary-Mother-of-God-pray-for-us-sinners-now-and-in-the-hour-of-our-death-Amen,'
she repeated, again and again, as fast as her sobs would permit her. Every now and then she would be seized and
shaken by an access of nausea, and the praying would be interrupted for a
moment. Then it began again where she
had left off
'...us-sinners-now-and-in-the-hour-of-our-death-Amen-Holy-Mary-Mother-of-God
...'
Dr Obispo
opened his mouth to make an exclamation, then closed it again, whispered
'Christ!' and walked quickly and silently round the pool. Before making his presence known, he took the
precaution of picking up the pistol and slipping it into his pocket. One never knew. Then he called Mr Stoyte's name. The old man started, and a hideous expression
of terror appeared on his face. Fear
gave place to relief as he turned round and saw who it was that had spoken to
him.
'Thank
God it's you,' he said; then suddenly remembered that this was the man he had
meant to kill. But all that had been a
million years ago, a million miles away.
The near, immediate, urgent fact was not the Baby, not love or anger; it
was fear and this thing that lay here on the ground.
'You got
to save him,' he said in a hoarse whisper.
'We can say it was an accident.
I'll pay him anything he likes.
Anything in reason,' an old reflex impelled him to add. 'But you got to save him.' Laboriously he heaved himself to his feet and
motioned Dr Obispo to his vacated place.
The only
movement Dr Obispo made was one of withdrawal.
The old man was covered with blood, and he had no wish to spoil a
ninety-five dollar suit. 'Save him?'
he repeated. 'You're mad. Look at all the brain lying there on the
floor.'
From the
shadows behind him, Virginia interrupted the sobbing mutter of her prayers to
scream. 'On the floor,' she kept
wailing. 'On the floor.'
Dr Obispo
turned on her savagely. 'Shut up, do you
hear?'
The
screams abruptly ceased; but a few seconds later there was a sound of violent
retching; then
'Holy-Mary-Mother-of-God-pray-for-us-sinners-now-and-in-the-hour-of-our-death-Amen-Holy-Mary-Mother-of-God-pray-for-us-sinners
...'
'If we're
going to try and save anybody,' Dr Obispo went on, 'it had better be you. And believe me,' he added emphatically,
throwing all his weight on his left leg and using the toe of his right shoe to
point at the body, 'you need some saving.
It's either the gas chamber of St Quentin for life.'
'But it
was an accident,' Mr Stoyte began to protest with a breathless eagerness. 'I mean, it was all a mistake. I never wanted to shoot him. I meant to ...' He broke off and stood in silence, his mouth
working, as though he were trying to swallow some unspoken words.
'You
meant to kill me,' said Dr Obispo, completing the sentence for him and smiling,
as he did so, with the expression of wolfish good-humour which was
characteristic of him in any situation where the joke was at all embarrassing
or painful. Secure in the knowledge that
the old buzzard was much too scared to be angry, and that anyhow the gun was in
his own pocket, he prolonged the joke by saying, 'Well,' sententiously, 'that's
what comes of snooping.'
'...
now-and-in-the-hour-of-our-death-Amen,' Virginia gabbled in the ensuing
silence. 'Holy-Mary-Mother ...'
'I never
meant it,' Mr Stoyte reiterated. 'I just
got mad. Guess I didn't really figure
out what I was doing....'
'Tell
that to the jury,' said Dr Obispo sarcastically.
'But I
swear it: I didn't really know,' Mr Stoyte protested. His harsh voice broke grotesquely into a
squeak. His face was white with fear.
The
doctor shrugged his shoulders. 'Maybe,'
he said. 'But not knowing doesn't make
any difference to that.' He stood on one
leg again to point an elegantly shod foot in the direction of the body.
'But what
shall I do?' Mr Stoyte almost screamed in the anguish of his terror.
'Don't
ask me.'
Mr Stoyte
initiated the gesture of laying his head imploringly on the other's sleeve; but
Dr Obispo quickly drew back. 'No, don't
touch me,' he said. 'Just look at your
hands.'
Mr Stoyte
looked. The thick, carrot-like fingers
were red; under the horny nails the blood was already caked and dry, like
clay. 'God!' he whispered. 'Oh my God!'
'...
and-at-the-hour-of-our-death-Amen-Holy-Mary ...'
At the
word 'death' the old man started as though he had been struck with a whip. 'Obispo,' he began again, breathless with
apprehension, 'Obispo! Listen here - you
got to help me out of this. You got to
help me,' he entreated.
'After
you did your best to do that to me?'
The white-and-tan shoe shot out again.
'You
wouldn't let them get me?' Mr Stoyte wheedled, abject in his terror.
'Why
wouldn't I?'
'But you
can't,' he almost shouted. 'You can't.'
Dr Obispo
bent down to make quite sure, in the fading light, that there was no blood on
the couch; then, pulling up his fawn-coloured trousers, sat down. 'One gets tired of standing,' he said in a
pleasant conversational tone.
Mr Stoyte
went on pleading. 'I'll make it worth
your while,' he said. 'You can have
anything you care to ask for. Anything,'
he repeated without any qualifying reference, this time, to reason.
'Ah,'
said Dr Obispo, 'now you're talking turkey.'
'...Mother-of-God,'
muttered the Baby,
'pray-for-us-sinners-now-and-in-the-hour-of-our-death-Amen-Holy-Mary-Mother-of-God-pray-for-us-sinners-now
...'
'You're
talking turkey,' Dr Obispo repeated.
PART THREE
CHAPTER ONE
There was a tap at the door of Jeremy's work-room; it
was Mr Propter who entered. He was
wearing, Jeremy noticed, the same dark-grey suit and black tie as he had worn
at Pete's funeral. The urban costume
diminished him; he seemed smaller than in his working clothes, and at the same
time less himself. That weather-beaten,
emphatically featured face of his - that face of a statue high up on the west
front of a cathedral - looked curiously incongruous above a starched collar.
'You've
not forgotten?' he said, when they had shaken hands.
For all
reply, Jeremy pointed to his own black jacket and sponge-bag trousers. They were expected at Tarzana for the
ceremonial opening of the new Stoyte Auditorium.
Mr
Propter looked at his watch. 'We've got
another few minutes before we need think of starting.' He sat down.
'What's the news?'
'Couldn't
be better,' Jeremy answered.
Mr
Propter nodded. 'Now that poor Jo and
the others have gone, it must be quite agreeable here.'
'All
alone with twelve million dollars' worth of bric-à-brac,' said Jeremy. 'I have the most enormous fun.'
'How
little fun you'd be having,' said Mr Propter meditatively, 'if you'd been left
in company with the people who actually made the bric-à-brac. With Greco, and Rubens, and Turner, and Fra
Angelico.'
'God
preserve us!' said Jeremy, throwing up his hands.
'That's
the charm of art,' Mr Propter went on.
'It represents only the most amiable aspects of the most talented human
beings. That's why I've never been able
to believe that the art of any period threw much light on the life of that
period. That a Martian; show him a
representative collection of Botticellis, Peruginos and Raphaels. Could he infer from them the conditions
described by Machiavelli?'
'No, he
couldn't,' Jeremy agreed. 'But
meanwhile, here's another question. The
conditions described by Machiavelli - were they the real conditions? Not that Machiavelli didn't tell the
truth. The things he described really
happened. But did contemporaries think
them as awful as they seem to us when we read about them now? We think they ought to have been
miserable about what was happening. But
were they?'
'Were
they?' Mr Propter repeated. 'We ask the
historians; and of course they can't answer - because obviously there's no way
of compiling statistics about the sum of happiness, nor any way of comparing
the feelings of people living under one set of conditions with the feelings of
people living under another and quite different set. The real conditions at any given moment are
the subjective conditions of the people then alive. And the historian has no way of finding out
what those conditions were.'
'No way
except through looking at works of art,' said Jeremy. 'I'd say they do throw light on the
subjective conditions. Take one of your examples. Perugino's a contemporary of
Machiavelli. That means that at least
one person contrived to be cheerful all through an unpleasant period. And if one could be, why not many?' He cleared the way for a quotation with a
little cough. '"The state of the
country never put a man off his dinner."'
'Massive
wisdom!' said Mr Propter. 'But remember
that the state of Dr Johnson's England was excellent, even at its worst. What about the state of a country like China,
say, or Spain - a country where a man can't be put off his dinner, for the
simple reason that there isn't any dinner?
And conversely, what about all the losses of appetite at times when
everything's going well?' He paused,
smiling enquiringly at Jeremy, then shook his head. 'Sometimes there's a lot of cheerfulness as
well as a lot of misery; sometimes there seems to be almost nothing but
misery. That's all the historian can say
insofar as he's a historian. Insofar as
he's a theologian, of course, or a metaphysician, he can maunder on
indefinitely, like Marx or St Augustine or Spengler.' Mr Propter made a little grimace of distaste. 'God, what a lot of bosh we've managed to
talk in the last few thousand years!' he said.
'But it
has its charm,' Jeremy insisted. 'Really
good bosh ...'
'I'm
barbarous enough to prefer sense,' said Mr Propter. 'That's why, if I want a philosophy of
history, I go to the psychologist.'
'"Totem
and Taboo?"' Jeremy questioned in some astonishment.
'No, no,'
said Mr Propter with a certain impatience.
'Not that kind of psychologist.
I mean the religious psychologist; the one who knows by direct experience
that men are capable of liberation and enlightenment. He's the only philosophy of history whose
hypothesis has been experimentally verified; therefore the only one who can
make a generalization that covers the facts.'
'And what
are his generalizations?' said Jeremy.
'Just the usual thing?'
Mr
Propter laughed. 'Just the usual thing,'
he answered: 'the old, boring, unescapable truths. On the human level, men live in ignorance,
craving and fear. Ignorance, craving and
fear result in some temporary pleasures, in many lasting miseries, in final
frustration. The nature of the cure is
obvious; the difficulties in the way of its achieving it, almost
insuperable. We have to choose between
almost insuperable difficulties on the one hand and absolutely certain misery
and frustration on the other. Meanwhile,
the general hypothesis remains as the intellectual key to history. Only the religious psychologist can make any
sense of Perugino and Machiavelli, for example; or of all this.' He pointed towards the Hauberk Papers.
Jeremy
twinkled behind his glasses and patted his bald patch. 'Your true scholar,' he fluted, 'doesn't even
want to make sense of it.'
'Yes, I
always tend to forget that,' said Mr Propter rather sadly.
Jeremy
coughed. '"Gave us the doctrine of
the enclitic De,"' he quoted from the 'Grammarian's Funeral.'
'Gave it
for his own sake,' said Mr Propter, getting out of his chair. 'Gave it regardless of the fact that the
grammar he was studying was hopelessly unscientific, riddled with concealed
metaphysics, utterly provincial and antiquated.
Well,' he added, 'that's what one would expect, I suppose.' He took Jeremy's arm, and they walked
together towards the elevator. 'What a
curious figure old Browning is!' he continued, his mind harking back to the
Grammarian. 'Such a first-rate
intelligence, and at the same time such a fool. All that preposterous stuff about romantic
love! Bringing God into it, putting it
into heaven, talking as though marriage and the higher forms of adultery were
identical with the beatific vision. The
silliness of it! But, again, that's what
one has to expect.' He sighed. 'I don't know why,' he added after a pause,
'I often find myself remembering that rhyme of his - I can't even recall which
poem it comes from - the one that goes: "one night he kissed My soul out
in a burning mist." My soul out in
a burning mist, indeed!' he repeated.
'Really, how much I prefer Chaucer on the subject. Do you remember? "Thus swivèd is this carpenterès
wife." So beautifully objective and
unemphatic and free of verbiage!
Browning was always rambling on about God; but I suspect he was much
farther away from reality than Chaucer was, even though Chaucer never thought
about God if he could possibly help it.
Chaucer had nothing between himself and eternity but his appetites. Browning had his appetites, plus a great
barrage of nonsense - nonsense, what's more, with a purpose. For instance, that bogus mysticism wasn't
merely gratuitous bosh. It had an
object. It existed in order that
Browning might be able to persuade himself that his appetites were identical
with God. "Thus swivèd in this
carpenterès wife,"' he repeated, as they entered the elevator and went up
with the Vermeer to the great hall.
'"My soul out in the burning mist!"' It's extraordinary the way the whole quality
of our existence can be changed by altering the words in which we think and
talk about it. We float in language like
icebergs - four-fifths under the surface and only one-fifth of us projecting
into the open are of immediate, non-linguistic experience.'
The
crossed the hall. Mr Propter's car was
standing outside the front door. He took
the wheel; Jeremy got in beside him. The
drove off, down the curving road, past the baboons, past Giambologna's nymph,
past the Grotto, under the portcullis and across the drawbridge.
'I so
often think of that poor boy,' said Mr Propter, breaking a long silence. 'Dying so suddenly.'
'I'd no
idea his heart was as bad as that,' said Jeremy.
'In a
certain sense,' Mr Propter went on, 'I feel responsible for what happened. I asked him to help me in the carpenter's
shop. Made him work too hard, I guess -
though he insisted it was all right for him.
I ought to have realized that he had his pride - that he was young
enough to feel ashamed of admitting he couldn't take it. One's punished for being insensitive and
unaware. And so are the people one's
insensitive about.'
They
drove past the hospital and through the orange groves in silence. 'There's a kind of pointlessness about sudden
and premature death,' said Jeremy at last.
'A kind of specially acute irrelevance ...'
'Specially
acute?' Mr Propter questioned. 'No, I
shouldn't say so. It's no more
irrelevant than any other human event.
If it seems more irrelevant, that's only because, of all possible
events, premature death is the most glaringly out of harmony with what we
imagine ourselves to be.'
'What do
you mean?' Jeremy asked.
Mr
Propter smiled. 'I mean what I presume you
mean,' he answered. 'If a thing
seems irrelevant, there must be something it's irrelevant to. In this case, that something is our
conception of what we are. We think of
ourselves as free, purposive beings. But
every now and then things happen to us that are incompatible with this
conception. We speak of them as
accidents; we call them pointless and irrelevant. But what's the criterion by which we
judge? The criterion is the picture we
paint of ourselves in our own fancy - the highly flattering portrait of the
free soul making creative choices and being the master of its fate. Unfortunately, the picture bears no
resemblance to ordinary human reality.
It's the picture of what we'd like to be, of what, indeed, we might
become if we took the trouble. To a
being who is in fact the slave of circumstance there's nothing specially
irrelevant about premature death. It's
the sort of event that's characteristic of the universe in which he actually
lives - though not, of course, of the universe he foolishly imagines he lives
in. An accident is the collision of a
train of events on the level of determinism with another train of events on the
level of freedom. We imagine that our
life is full of accidents, because we imagine that our human existence is lived
on the level of freedom. In fact, it
isn't. Most of us live on the mechanical
level, where events happen in accordance with the laws of large numbers. The things we call accidental and irrelevant
belong to the very essence of the world in which we elect to live.'
Annoyed
at having, by an unconsidered word, landed himself in a position which Mr
Propter could show to be unwarrantably 'idealistic,' Jeremy was silent. They drove on for a time without speaking.
'That
funeral!' Jeremy said at last; for his chronically anecdotal mind had wandered
back to what was concrete, particular and odd in the situation under
discussion. 'Like something out of
Ronald Firbank!' He giggled. 'I told Mr Habakkuk he ought to put steam
heat into the statues. They're
dreadfully unlifelike to the touch.'
He moved his cupped hand over an imaginary marble protuberance.
Mr
Propter, who had been thinking about liberation, nodded and politely smiled.
'And Dr
Mulge's reading of the service!' Jeremy went on. 'Talk of unction! It couldn't have been oilier even in an
English cathedral. Like vaseline with a
flavour of port wine. And the way he
said, "I am the resurrection and the life" - as though he really
meant it, as though he, Mulge, could personally guarantee it, in writing, on a
money-back basis: the entire cost of the funeral refunded if the next world
fails to give complete satisfaction.'
'He
probably even believes it,' said Mr Propter meditatively. 'In some curious Pickwickian way, of
course. You know: it's true, but you
consistently act as though it weren't; it's the most important fact in the
universe, but you never think about it if you can possibly avoid it.'
'And how
do you believe in it?' Jeremy asked.
'Pickwickianly or unPickwickianly?'
And when Mr Propter answered that he didn't believe in that sort of
resurrection and life: 'Oho!' he went on in the tone of an indulgent father who
has caught his son kissing the housemaid, 'Oho!
So there's also a Pickwickian resurrection?'
Mr
Propter laughed. 'I think there may be,'
he said.
'In which
case, what has become of poor Pete?'
'Well, to
start with,' said Mr Propter slowly, 'I should say that Pete, qua Pete,
doesn't exist any longer.'
'Super-Pickwickian!'
Jeremy interjected.
'But
Pete's ignorance,' Mr Propter went on, 'Pete's fears and cravings - well, I
think it's quite possible that they're still somehow making trouble in the
world. Making trouble for everything and
everyone, especially for themselves. Themselves
in whatever form they happen to be taking.'
'And if
by any chance Pete hadn't been ignorant and concupiscent, what then?'
'Well,
obviously,' said Mr Propter, 'there wouldn't be anything to make further
trouble.' After a moment's silence, he
quoted Tauler's definition of God.
'"God is a being withdrawn from creatures, a free power, a pure
working."'
He turned
the car off the main road, into the avenue of pepper trees that wound across
the green lawns of the Tarzana Campus.
The new Auditorium loomed up, austerely romanesque. Mr Propter parked his old Ford among the lustrous
Cadillacs and Chryslers and Packards already lined up in front of it, and they
entered. The press photographers at the
entrance looked them over, saw at a glance that they were neither bankers, nor
movie stars, nor corporation lawyers, nor dignitaries of any church, nor
senators, and turned away contemptuous.
The
students were already in their places.
Under their stares, Jeremy and Mr Propter were ushered down the aisle to
the rows of seats reserved for distinguished guests. And what distinction! There, in the front row, was Sol R.
Katzenblum, the President of Abraham Lincoln Pictures Incorporated and a pillar
of Moral Re-Armament; there, beside him, was the Bishop of Santa Monica; there
too was Mr Pescecagniolo, of the Bank of the Far West. The Grand Duchess Eulalie was sitting next to
Senator Bardolph; and in the next row were two of the Engels Brothers and
Gloria Bossom, who was chatting with Rear-Admiral Shotoverk. The orange robe and permanently waved beard
belonged to Swami Yogalinga, founder of the School of Personality. Beside him sat the Vice-President of Consol
Oil and Mrs Wagner ...
Suddenly
the organ burst out, full blast, into the Tarzana Anthem. The academic procession filed in. Two by two, in their gowns and hoods and
tasselled mortarboards, the Doctors of Divinity, of Philosophy, of Science, of
Law, of Letters, of Music, shuffled down the aisle and up the steps on to the
platform, where their seats had been prepared for them in a wide arc close to
the backdrop. At the centre of the stage
stood a reading-desk, and at the reading-desk stood Dr Mulge. Not that he did any reading, of course; for
Dr Mulge prided himself on being able to speak almost indefinitely without a
note. The reading-desk was there to be
intimately leant over, to be caught hold of and passionately leant back from,
to be struck emphatically with the palm of the hand, to be dramatically walked
away from and returned to.
The organ
was silent. Dr Mulge began his address -
began it with a reference, of course, to Mr Stoyte. Mr Stoyte whose generosity ... The
realization of a Dream ... This embodiment of an ideal in Stone ... The Man of
Vision. Without Vision the people perish
... But this Man had had Vision ... The Vision of what Tarzana was destined to
become .. The centre, the focus, the torchbearer ... California ... New
Culture, richer science, higher spirituality ... (Dr Mulge's voice modulated
from bassoon to trumpet. From vaseline
with a mere flavour of port wine to undiluted fatty alcohol.) But, alas (and here the voice subsided
pathetically into saxophone and lanoline), alas ... Unable to be with us today
... A sudden distressing event ... Carried off on the threshold of life ... A
young collaborator in those scientific fields which he ventured to say were as
close to Mr Stoyte's heart as the fields of social service and culture ... The
shock ... The exquisitely sensitive heart under the sometimes rough exterior
... His physician had ordered a complete and immediate change of scene ... But
in spite of physical absence, his spirit ... We feel it among us today ... An
inspiration to all, young and old alike ... The torch of Culture ... The Future
... The Ideal ... The Spirit of Man ... Great things already accomplished ...
God had walked in power through this campus ... Strengthened and guided ...
Forward ... Onward ... Upward ... Faith and Hope ... Democracy ... Freedom ...
the imperishable heritage of Washington and Lincoln ... The glory that was
Greece reborn beside the waters of the Pacific ... The flag ... The mission ...
The manifest destiny ... The will of God ... Tarzana ...
It was
over at last. The organ played. The academic procession filed back up the
aisle. The distinguished guests
straggled after it.
Outside,
in the sunshine, Mr Propter was buttonholed by Mrs Pescecagniolo.
'I
thought that was a wonderfully inspirational address,' she said with
enthusiasm.
Mr
Propter nodded. 'Almost the most
inspirational address I ever listened to.
And God knows,' he said, 'I've heard a lot of them in the course of my
life.'
CHAPTER TWO
Even in London there was a little diluted sunshine -
sunshine that brightened and grew stronger as they drove through the
diminishing smoke of the outer suburbs, until at last, somewhere near Esher,
they had travelled into the most brilliant of early spring mornings.
Under a
fur rug, Mr Stoyte sprawled diagonally across the read seat of the car. More for his own good, this time, than for
his physician's, he was back again on sedatives, and found it hard, before
lunch, to keep awake. With a fitful
stertorousness he had dozed almost from the moment they drove away from the
Ritz.
Pale and
with sad eyes, silently ruminating an unhappiness which five days of rain on
the Atlantic and three more of London gloom had done nothing to alleviate,
Virginia sat aloof in the front seat.
At the
wheel (for he had thought it best to take no chauffeur on this expedition) Dr
Obispo whistled to himself and, occasionally, even sang aloud - sang, 'Stretti,
stretti, nell'estasi d'amor'; sang, 'Do you think a l-ittle drink'll do us
any harm?' sang, 'I dreamt I dwelt in marble halls.' It was partly the fine weather that made him
so cheerful - springtime, he said to himself, the only merry ringtime, not to
mention the lesser celandines, the windflowers, whatever they might be, the
primroses in the copse. And should he
ever forget his bewilderment when English people had started talking about cops
in the singular and in contexts where policemen seemed deliriously out of
place? 'Let's go and pick some primroses
in the cops.' Surprising intestinal
flora! Better even than the carp's. Which brought him to the second reason for
his satisfaction with life. They were on
their way, perhaps, to finding something interesting about the Fifth Earl,
something significant about the relationship between senility and sterols and
the intestinal flora of the carp.
With
mock-operatic emphasis he burst again into song. 'I drea-heamt I dwe-helt in mar-harble
halls,' he proclaimed, 'with vass-als and serfs at my si-hi-hide. And of all who assembled with-hin those
walls, that I was the hope and the pri-hi-hide.'
Virginia,
who had been sitting beside him, stony with misery, turned round in sudden
exasperation. 'Oh, for heaven's sake!'
she almost screamed, breaking the silence that had lasted all the way from
Kingston-on-Thames. 'Can't you be
quiet?'
Dr Obispo
ignored her protests. 'I had riches,' he
sang on (and reflected, with an inward chuckle of satisfaction as he did so,
that the statement now happened to be true), 'I had riches too grea-heat to
cou-hount.' No; that was an
exaggeration. Not at all too great to
count. Just a nice little
competence. Enough to give him security
and the means to continue his researches without having to waste his time on a
lot of sick people who ought to be dead.
Two hundred thousand dollars in cash and forty-five hundred acres of
land in the San Felipe Valley - land that Uncle Jo had positively sworn was
just on the point of getting its irrigation water. (And if it didn't get it, God! how he'd twist
the old buzzard's tail for him!) 'Heart
failure due to myocarditis of rheumatic origin.' He could have asked a lot more than two
hundred thousand for that death-certificate.
Particularly as it hadn't been his only service. No, sir!
There had been all the mess to clear up.
(The ninety-five dollar fawn-coloured suit was ruined after all.) There had been the servants to keep away; the
Baby to put to bed with a big shot of morphia; the permission to cremate the
body to be obtained from the next of kin, who was a sister, living, thank God,
in straitened circumstances, and at Pensacola, Florida, so that she fortunately
couldn't afford to come out to California for the funeral. And then (most ticklish of all) there had
been the search for a dishonest undertaker; the discovery of a possible crook;
the interview, with its veiled hints of an unfortunate accident to be hushed
up, of money that was, practically speaking, no object; then, when the fellow
had fired off his sanctimonious little speech about its being a duty to help a leading citizen to avoid
unpleasant publicity, the abrupt change of manner, the business-like statement
of the unavoidable facts and the necessary fictions, the negotiations as to
price. In the end, Mr Pengo had agreed
not to notice the holes in Pete's skull for as little as twenty-five thousand
dollars.
'I had
riches too gre-heat to cou-hount, could boast of a hi-yish ancestral
name.' Yes, decidedly, Dr Obispo reflected,
as he sang, decidedly he could have asked for a great deal more. But what would have been the point? He was a reasonable man; almost, you might
say, a philosopher; modest in his ambitions, uninterested in worldly success,
and with tastes so simple that the most besetting of them, outside the sphere
of scientific research, could be satisfied in the great majority of cases at
practically no expense whatsoever, sometimes even with a net profit, as when
Mrs Bojanus had given him that solid gold cigarette-case as a token of her
esteem - and then there were Josephine's pearl studs, and the green enamel
cufflinks with his monogram in diamonds from little what's-her-name ...
'But I
a-halso drea-heamt which plea-heased me most,' he sang, raising his voice for
his final affirmation and putting in a passionate tremolo, 'that you lo-hoved
me sti-hill the same, that lo-hoved me sti-hill the same, that you loved me,'
he repeated, turning away for a moment from the Portsmouth road to peer with
raised eyebrows and a look of amused, ironical enquiry into Virginia's averted
face, 'you lo-hoved me stil-hill the same,' and, for the fourth time with
tremendous emphasis and pathos, 'that you lo-ho-ho-hoved me sti-hi-hill the
same.'
He shot
another glance at Virginia. She was
staring straight in front of her, holding her lower lip between her teeth, as
though she were in pain but determined not to cry out.
'Did I
dream correctly?' His smile was wolfish.
The Baby
did not answer. From the back seat Mr
Stoyte snored like a bulldog.
'Do you
lo-ho-hove me stil-hi-hill the same?' he insisted, making the car swerve to the
right as he spoke, and putting on speed to pass a row of Army lorries.
The Baby
released her lip and said, 'I could kill you.'
'Of
course you could,' Dr Obispo agreed.
'But you won't. Because you
lo-ho-ho-hove me too much. Or rather,'
he added, and his smile became more gleefully canine with every word, 'you
don't lo-ho-ho-hove me; you lo-ho-ho-hove ...' he paused for an instant:
'Well, let's put it in a more poetical way - because one can never have too
much poetry, don't you agree? you're in lo-ho-hove with Lo-ho-ho-hove, so much
in lo-ho-ho-hove that, when it came to the point, you simply couldn't bring
yourself to bump me off. Because,
whatever you may feel about me, I'm the boy that produces the
lo-ho-ho-hoves.' He began to sing again:
'I dre-heamt I ki-hilled the goo-hoo-hoo-hoose that laid-haid the go-holden
e-he-heggs.'
Virginia
covered her ears with her hands in an effort to shut out the sound of his voice
- the hideous sound of the truth.
Because, of course, it was true.
Even after Pete's death, even after she had promised Our Lady that it
would never, never happen again - well, it had happened again.
Dr Obispo
continued his improvisation. 'And that
thu-hus I'd lo-host my so-hole excuse for showing the skin of my le-he-hegs.'
Virginia
pressed her fingers more tightly over her ears.
It had happened again, even though she'd said no, even though she'd got
mad at him, fought with him, scratched him; but he'd only laughed and gone on;
and then suddenly she was just too tired to fight any more. Too tired and too miserable. He got what he wanted; and the awful thing was
that it seemed to be what she wanted - or, rather, what her unhappiness wanted;
for the misery had been relieved for a time; she had been able to forget the
blood; she had been able to sleep. The
next morning she had despised and hated herself more than ever.
'I had
grottoes and candles and doodahs galore,' Dr Obispo sang on; then relapsed into
speech; 'not to mention fetishes, relics, mantras, prayer-wheels, gibberish,
vestments. But I also dreamt which
pleased me galore' (he opened his mouth and let out his richest and most
tremulous notes), 'that you lo-hoved me sti-hill the same, that you
lo-ho-ho-ho-ho-ho-ho-ho-ho-ho-ho-ho-ho-ho-hoved me ...'
'Stop!'
Virginia shouted at the top of her voice.
Uncle Jo
woke up with a start. 'What's the
matter?' he asked.
'She
objects to my singing,' Dr Obispo called back to him. 'Goodness knows why. I have a charming voice. Particularly well adapted to a small
auditorium, like this car.' He laughed
with wholehearted merriment. The Baby's
antics, as she vacillated between Priapus and the Sacred Grotto, gave him the
most exquisite amusement. Along with the
fine weather, the primroses in the cops and the prospect of learning something
decisive about sterols and senility, they accounted for the ebullience of his
good-humour.
It was
about half-past eleven when they reached their destination. The lodge was untenanted; Dr Obispo had to
get out and open the gates himself.
Within,
grass was growing over the drive and the park had sunk back towards the squalor
of unmodified nature. Uprooted by past
storms, dead trees lay rotting where they had fallen. On the boles of the living, great funguses
grew like pale buns. The ornamental
plantations had turned into little jungles, impenetrable with brambles. Perches on its knoll about the drive, the
Grecian gazebo was in ruins. They
rounded a curve, and there was the house, Jacobean at one end, with strange
accretions of nineteenth-century Gothic at the other. The yew hedges had grown up into high walls
of shaggy greenery. The position of what
had once been formal flower-beds was marked by rich green circles of docks,
oblongs and crescents of sow-thistles and nettles. From the tufted grass of a long untended lawn
emerged the tops of rusty croquet hoops.
Dr Obispo
stopped the car at the foot of the front steps and got out. As he did so, a little girl, perhaps eight or
nine years old, darted out of a tunnel in the yew hedge. At the sight of the car and its occupants the
child halted, made a movement of retreat, then, reassured by a second glance,
came forward.
'Look
what I got,' she said in sub-standard Southern English, and held out, snout
downwards, a gas-mask half filled with primroses and dog's mercury.
Gleefully,
Dr Obispo laughed. 'The cops!' he
cried. 'You picked them in the
cops!' He patted the child's
tow-coloured head. 'What's your name?'
'Millie,'
the little girl answered; and then added, with a note of pride in her voice: 'I
'aven't been somewhere for five days now.'
'Five
days?'
Millie
nodded triumphantly. 'Granny says she'll
'ave to take me to the doctor.' She
nodded again, and smiled up at him with the expression of one who has just
announced his forthcoming trip to Bali.
` 'Well, I
think your Granny's entirely right,' said Dr Obispo. 'Does your Granny live here?'
The child
nodded affirmatively. 'She's in the
kitchen,' she answered; and added irrelevantly, 'she's deaf.'
'And what
about Lady Jane Hauberk?' Dr Obispo went on.
'Does she live here? And
the other one - Lady Anne, isn't that it?'
Again the
child nodded. Then an expression of sly
mischief appeared on her face. 'Do you
know what Lady Anne does?' she asked.
'What
does she do?'
Millie
beckoned to him to bend down so that she could put her mouth to his ear. 'She makes noises in 'er stomick,' she
whispered.
'You
don't say so!'
'Like
birds singing,' he child added poetically.
'She does it after lunch.'
Dr Obispo
patted the tow-coloured head again and said, 'We'd like to see Lady Anne and
Lady Jane.'
'See
them?' the little girl repeated in a tone almost of alarm.
'Do you
think you could go and ask your Granny to show us in?'
Millie
shook her head. 'She wouldn't do
it. Granny won't let nobody come
in. Some people came about these
things.' She held up the gas-mask. 'Lady Jane, she got so angry I was
frightened. But then she broke one of
the lamps with her stick - you know, by mistake: bang! and the glass was all in
bits, all over the floor. That made me
laugh.'
'Good for
you,' said Dr Obispo. 'Why shouldn't we
make you laugh again?'
The child
looked at him suspiciously. 'What do you
mean?'
Dr Obispo
assumed a conspiratorial expression and dropped his voice to a whisper. 'I mean, you might let us in by one of the
side-doors, and we'd walk on tiptoes, like this; he gave a demonstration across
the gravel. 'And then we'd pop into the
room where they're sitting and give them a surprise. And then maybe Lady Jane will smash another
lamp, and we'll all laugh and laugh and laugh.
What do you say to that?'
'Granny'd
be awfully cross,' the child said dubiously.
'We won't
tell her you did it.'
'She'd
find out.'
'No, she
wouldn't,' said Dr Obispo confidently.
Then, changing his tone, 'Do you like candies?' he added.
The child
looked at him blankly.
'Lovely
candies?' he repeated voluptuously; then suddenly remembered that, in this
damned country, candies weren't called candies.
What the hell did they call them?
He remembered. 'Lovely
sweets!' He darted back to the car and
returned with the expensive-looking box of chocolates that had been bought in
case Virginia should feel hungry by the way. He opened the lid, let the child take one
sniff, then closed it again. 'Let us
in,' he said, 'and you can have them all.'
Five
minutes later they were squeezing their way through an ogival french window at
the nineteenth-century end of the house.
Within, there was a twilight that smelt of dust and dry-rot and
mothballs. Gradually, as the eyes became
accustomed to the gloom, a draped billiard-table emerged into view, a
mantelpiece with a gilt clock, a bookshelf containing the Waverley Novels in
crimson leather, and the eighth edition of the Encyclopaedia Britannica, a
large brown painting representing the baptism of the future Edward VII, the
heads of five or six stags. Hanging on
the wall near the door was a map of the Crimea; little flags on pins marked the
position of Sevastopol and the Alma.
Still
carrying the flower-filled gas-mask in one hand, and with the forefinger of the
other pressed to her lips, Millie led the way on tiptoes along a corridor,
across a darkened drawing-room, through a lobby, down another passage. Then she halted and, waiting for Dr Obispo to
come up with her, pointed.
'That's
the door,' she whispered. 'They're in
there.'
Without a
word, Dr Obispo handed her the box of chocolates; the child snatched it and,
like an animal with a stolen titbit, slipped past Virginia and Mr Stoyte, and
hurried away down the dark passage to enjoy her prize in safety. Dr Obispo watched her go, then turned to his
companions.
There was
a whispered consultation, and in the end it was agreed that Dr Obispo should go
on alone.
He walked
forward, quietly opened the door, slipped through and closed it behind him.
Outside,
in the corridor, the Baby and Uncle Jo waited for what seemed to them
hours. Then, all at once, there was a
crescendo of confused noise which culminated in the sudden emergence of Dr
Obispo. He slammed the door, pushed a
key into the lock and turned it.
An
instant later, from within, the door-handle was violently rattled, a shrill old
voice cried, 'How dare you?' Then an
ebony cane delivered a series of peremptory raps and the voice almost screamed,
'Give me back those keys. Give them back
at once.'
Dr Obispo
put the key of the door in his pocket and came down the corridor, beaming with
satisfaction.
'The two
god-damnest-looking old hags you ever saw,' he said. 'One on each side of the fire, like Queen
Victoria and Queen Victoria.'
A second
voice joined the first; the rattling and the rapping were redoubled.
'Bang
away!' Dr Obispo shouted derisively; then, pushing Mr Stoyte with one hand and
with the other giving the Baby a familiar little slap on the buttocks, 'Come
on,' he said. 'Come on.'
'Come on
where?' Mr Stoyte asked in a tone of resentful bewilderment. He'd never been able to figure out what this
damn fool expedition across the Atlantic was for - except, of course, to get
away from the castle. Oh, yes, they'd
had to get away from the castle. No
question about that; in fact, the only question was whether they'd ever be able
to go back to it, after what happened - whether they'd ever be able to bathe in
that pool again, for example. Christ!
when he thought fit ...
But,
then, why go to England? At this
season? Why not Florida or Hawaii? But no; Obispo had insisted it must be
England. Because of his work, because there
might be something important to be found out there. Well, he couldn't say no to Obispo - not now,
not yet. And besides, he couldn't do without the man. His nerves, his digestion - all shot to
pieces. And he couldn't sleep without
dope; he couldn't pass a cop on the street without his heart missing a beat or
two. And you could say, 'God is
love. There is no death,' till you were
blue in the face; but it didn't make any difference. He was old, he was sick; death was coming
closer and closer, and unless Obispo did something quick, unless he found out
something soon ...
In the
dim corridor Mr Stoyte suddenly halted, 'Obispo,' he said anxiously, while the
Hauberk ladies hammered with ebony on the door of their prison, 'Obispo, are
you absolutely certain there's no such thing as hell? Can you prove it?'
Dr Obispo
laughed. 'Can you prove that the back
side of the moon isn't inhabited by green elephants?' he asked.
'No, but
seriously ...' Mr Stoyte insisted, in anguish.
'Seriously,'
Dr Obispo gaily answered, 'I can't prove anything about any assertion that
can't be verified.' Mr Stoyte and he had
had this sort of conversation before.
There was something, to his mind, exquisitely comic about chopping logic
with the old man's unreasoning terror.
The Baby
listened in silence. She knew about
hell; she knew what happened if you committed mortal sins - sins like
letting it happen again, after you'd promised Our Lady that it wouldn't. But Our Lady was so kind and so
wonderful. And, after all, it had really
been all that beast Sig's fault. Her own
intentions had been absolutely pure; and then Sig had come along and just made
her break her word. Our Lady would
understand. The awful thing was that it
had happened again, when he hadn't forced her.
But even then it hadn't really been her fault - because, after
all, she'd been through that terrible experience; she wasn't well; she ...
'But do
you think hell's possible?' Mr Stoyte began again.
'Everything
is possible,' said Dr Obispo cheerfully.
He cocked an ear to listen to what the old hags were yelling back there
behind the door.
'Do you
think there's one chance in a thousand it may be true? Or one in a million?'
Grinning,
Dr Obispo shrugged his shoulders. 'Ask
Pascal,' he suggested.
'Who's
Pascal?' Mr Stoyte enquired, clutching despairingly at any and every straw.
'He's
dead,' Dr Obispo positively shouted in his glee. 'Dead as a doornail. And now, for God's sake!' He seized Uncle Jo by the arm and fairly
dragged him along the passage.
The
terrible word reverberated through Mr Stoyte's imagination. 'But I want to be certain,' he protested.
'Certain
about what you can't know!'
'There must
be a way.'
'There
isn't. No way except dying and then
seeing what happens. Where the hell is that
child?' he added in another tone, and called, 'Millie!'
Her face
smeared with chocolate, the little girl popped up from behind an umbrella-stand
in the lobby. 'Did you see 'em?' she
asked with her mouth full.
Dr Obispo
nodded. 'They thought I was the Air Raid
Precautions.'
'That's
it!' the child cried excitedly. 'That
was the one that made her break the lamp.'
'Come
here, Millie,' Dr Obispo commanded. The
child came. 'Where's the door to the
cellar?'
An
expression of fear passed over Millie's face.
'It's locked,' she answered.
Dr Obispo
nodded. 'I know it,' he said. 'But Lady Jane gave me the keys.' He pulled out of his pocket a ring on which
were suspended three large keys.
'There's
bogies down there,' the child whispered.
'We don't
worry about bogies.'
'Granny
says they're awful,' Millie went on.
'She says they're something chronic.'
Her voice broke into a whimper.
'She says if I don't go somewhere more regular-like, the bogies will
come after me. But I can't 'elp
it.' The tears began to flow. 'It isn't my fault.'
'Of
course it isn't,' said Dr Obispo impatiently.
'Nothing is ever anybody's fault.
Even constipation. But now I want
you to show us the door of the cellar.'
Still in
tears, Millie shook her head. 'I'm
frightened.'
'But you
won't have to go down into the cellar.
Just show us where the door is, that's all.'
'I don't
want to.'
'Won't
you be a nice little girl,' Dr Obispo wheedled, 'and take us to the door?'
Stubborn
with fear, Millie continued to shake her head.
Dr
Obispo's hand shot out and snatched the box of chocolates out of the child's
grasp. 'If you don't tell me,' you won't
have any candies,' he said, and added irritably, 'sweets, I mean.'
Millie
let out a scream of anguish and tried to get back at the box; but he held it
high up, beyond her reach. 'Only when
you show us the door of the cellar,' he said; and, to show that he was in
earnest, he opened the box, took a handful of chocolates and popped them one
after another into his mouth. 'Aren't
they good!' he said as he munched.
'Aren't they just wonderful! Do
you know, I'm glad you won't show us the door, because then I can eat them
all.' He took another bite, made a
grimace of ecstasy. 'Ooh, goody,
goody!' He smacked his lips. 'Poor little Millie! She isn't going to get any more of
them.' He helped himself again.
'Oh,
don't, don't!' the child entreated each time she saw one of the brown nuggets
of bliss disappearing between Dr Obispo's jaws.
Then a moment came when greed was stronger than fear. 'I'll show you where it is,' she screamed,
like a victim succumbing to torture and promising to confess.
The
effect was magical. Dr Obispo replaced
in the box the three chocolates he was still holding and closed the lid. 'Come on,' he said, and held out his hand for
the child to take.
'Give me
the box,' she demanded.
Dr
Obispo, who understood the principles of diplomacy, shook his head. 'Not till you've taken us to the door,' he
said.
Millie
hesitated for a moment; then, resigned to the hard necessity of keeping to her
side of the bargain, took his hand.
Followed
by Uncle Jo and the Baby, they made their way out of the lobby, back through
the drawing-room, along the passage, past the map of the Crimea and across the
billiard-room, along another passage and into a large library. The red plush curtains were drawn; but a
little light filtered between them. All
round the room the brown and blue and crimson strata of classic literature ran
up to within three feet of the high ceiling, and at regular intervals along the
mahogany cornice stood busts of the illustrious dead. Millie pointed to Dante. 'That's Lady Jane,' she whispered
confidentially.
'For
Christ's sake!' Mr Stoyte broke out startlingly. 'What's the big idea?' What the hell do you figure we're doing?'
Dr Obispo
ignored him. 'Where's the door?' he
asked.
The child
pointed.
'What do
you mean?' he started angrily to shout.
Then he saw that what he had taken for just another section of the
book-filled shelves was in fact a mere false front of wood and leather
simulating thirty-three volumes of the Collected Sermons of Archbishop
Stillingfleet and (he recognized the Fifth Earl's touch) the Complete Works, in
seventy-seven volumes, of Donatien Alphonse François, Marquis de Sade. A keyhole revealed itself to a closer
scrutiny.
'Give me
my sweets,' the child demanded.
But Dr
Obispo was taking no risks. 'Not till we
see if the key fits.'
He tried
and, at the second attempt, succeeded.
'There you are.' He handed Millie
her chocolates and at the same time opened the door. The child uttered a scream of terror and
rushed away.
'What's
the big idea?' Mr Stoyte repeated uneasily.
'The big
idea,' said Dr Obispo, as he looked down the flight of steps that descended,
after a few feet, into an impenetrable darkness, 'the big idea is that you may
not have to find out whether there's such a place as hell. Not yet awhile, that's to say; not for a very
long time maybe. Ah, thank God!' he
added. 'We shall have some light.'
Two
old-fashioned, bull's-eye lanterns were standing on a shelf just inside the
door. Dr Obispo picked one of them up,
shook it, held it to his nose. There was
oil in it. He lit them both, handed one
to Mr Stoyte and, taking the other himself, led the way cautiously down the
stairs.
A long
descent; then a circular chamber cut out of the yellow sandstone. There were four doorways. They chose one of them and passed, along a
narrow corridor, into a second chamber with two more doorways. A blind alley first; then another flight of
steps leading to a cave full of ancient refuse.
There were no second issue; laboriously, with two wrong turnings on the
way, they retraced their steps to the circular chamber from which they had started,
and made trial of its second doorway. A
flight of descending steps; a succession of small rooms. One of these had been plastered, and upon its
walls early eighteenth-century hands had scratched obscene graffiti. They hurried on, down another short flight of
steps, into a large square room with an air-shaft leading at an angle through
the rock to a tiny, far-away ellipse of white light. That was all.
They turned back again. Mr Stoyte
began to swear; but the doctor insisted on going on. They tried the third doorway. A passage, a suite of three rooms. Two outlets from the last, one mounting, but
walled up with masonry after a little way; the other descending to a corridor
on a lower level. Thirty or forty feet
brought them to an opening on the left.
Dr Obispo turned his lantern into it, and the light revealed a vaulted
recess at the end of which, on a stuccoed pedestal, stood a replica in marble
of the Medici Venus.
'Well,
I'm damned!' said Mr Stoyte, and then, on second thoughts, was seized with a
kind of panic. 'How the hell did that
get here, Obispo?' he said, running to catch up the doctor.
Dr Obispo
did not answer, but hurried impatiently forward.
'It's
crazy,' Mr Stoyte went on apprehensively, as he trotted behind the doctor. 'It's downright crazy. I tell you, I don't like it.'
Dr Obispo
broke his silence. 'We might see if we
can get her for the Beverly Pantheon,' he said with a wolfish joviality. 'Hullo, what's this?' he added.
They
emerged from the tunnel into a fair-sized room.
At the centre of the room was a circular drum of masonry, with two iron
uprights rising from either side of it, and a crosspiece from which hung a
pulley.
'The
well!' said Dr Obispo, remembering a passage in the Fifth Earl's notebook.
He almost
ran towards the tunnel on the further side of the room. Ten feet from the entrance, his progress was
barred by a heavy, nail-studded oak door.
Dr Obispo took out his bunch of keys, chose at random and opened the
door at the first trial. They were on
the threshold of a small oblong chamber.
His bull's-eye revealed a second door on the opposite wall. He started at once towards it.
'Canned
beef!' said Mr Stoyte in astonishment, as he ran the beam of his lantern over
the rows of tins and jars on the shelves of a tall dresser that occupied almost
the whole of one of the sides of the room.
'Biloxi Shrimps. Slice
Pineapple. Boston Baked Beans,' he read
out, then turned towards Dr Obispo. 'I
tell you, Obispo, I don't like it.'
The Baby
had taken out a handkerchief saturated in 'Shocking' and was holding it to her
nose. 'The smell!' she said indistinctly
through its folds, and shuddered with disgust.
'The smell!'
Dr
Obispo, meanwhile, was trying his keys on the lock of the other door. It opened at last. A draught of warm air flowed in, and at once
the little room was filled with an intolerable stench. 'Christ!' said Mr Stoyte, and behind her
handkerchief the Baby let out a scream of nauseated horror.
Dr Obispo
made a grimace and advanced along the stream of foul air. At the end of a short corridor was a third
door, of iron bars this time, like the door (Dr Obispo reflected) of a
death-cell in a prison. He flashed his
lantern between the bars, into the foetid darkness beyond.
From the
little room Mr Stoyte and the Baby suddenly heard an astonished exclamation and
then, after a moment's silence, a violent, explosive guffaw, succeeded by peal
after peal of Dr Obispo's ferocious, metallic laughter. Paroxysm upon uncontrollable paroxysm, the
noise reverberated back and forth in the confined space. The hot, stinking air vibrated with a
deafening and almost maniacal merriment.
Followed
by Virginia, Mr Stoyte crossed the room and hastened through the open door into
the narrow tunnel beyond. Dr Obispo's
laughter was getting on his nerves.
'What the hell ...?' he shouted angrily as he advanced; then broke off
in the middle of the sentence. 'What's
that?' he whispered.
'A foetal
ape,' Dr Obispo began; but was cut short by another explosion of hilarity, that
doubled him up as though with a blow in the solar plexus.
'Holy
Mary,' the Baby began behind her handkerchief.
Beyond
the bars, the light of the lanterns had scooped out of the darkness a narrow
world of forms and colours. On the edge
of a low bed, at the centre of this world, a man was sitting, staring, as
though fascinated, into the light. His
legs, thickly covered with coarse reddish hair, were bare. The shirt, which was his only garment, was
torn and filthy. Knotted diagonally
across the powerful chest was a broad silk ribbon that had evidently once been
blue. From a piece of string tied round
his neck was suspended a little image of St George and the Dragon in gold and
enamel. He sat hunched up, his head
thrust forward and at the same time sunk between his shoulders. With one of his huge and strangely clumsy
hands he was scratching a sore place that showed red between the hairs of his
left calf.
'A foetal
ape that's had time to grow up,' Dr Obispo managed at last to say. 'It's too good!' Laughter overtook him again. 'Just look at his face!' he gasped, and
pointed through the bars. Above the
matted hair that concealed the jaws and cheeks, blue eyes stared out of
cavernous sockets. There were no eyebrows;
but under the dirty, wrinkled skin of the forehead a great ridge of bone
projected like a shelf.
Suddenly,
out of the black darkness, another simian face emerged into the beam of the
lantern - a face only lightly hairy, so that it was possible to see, not only
the ridge above the eyes, but also the curious distortions of the lower jaws,
the accretions of bone in front of the ears.
Clothed in an old check ulster and some glass beads, a body followed the
face into the light.
'It's a
woman,' said Virginia, almost sick with the horrified disgust she felt at the
sight of those pendulous and withered dugs.
The
doctor exploded into even noisier merriment.
Mr Stoyte
seized him by the shoulder and violently shook him. 'Who are they?' he demanded.
Dr Obispo
wiped his eyes and drew a deep breath; the storm of his laughter was flattened
to a heaving calm. As he opened his
mouth to answer Mr Stoyte's question, the creature in the shirt suddenly turned
upon the creature in the ulster and hit out at her head. The palm of the enormous hand struck the side
of her face. The creature in the ulster
uttered a scream of pain and rage, and shrank back out of the light. From the shadow came a shrill, furious
gibbering that seemed perpetually to tremble on the verge of articulate
blasphemy.
'The one
with the Order of the Garter,' said Dr Obispo, raising his voice against the
tumult, 'he's the Fifth Earl of Gonister.
The other's his housekeeper.'
'But
what's happened to them?'
'Just
time,' said Dr Obispo airily.
'Time?'
'I don't
know how old the female is,' Dr Obispo went on.
'But the Earl there - let me see, he was two hundred and one last
January.'
From the
shadows the shrill voice continued to scream its all but articulate abuse. Impassibly the Fifth Earl scratched the sore
on his leg and stared at the light.
Dr Obispo
went on talking. Slowing up of
development rates ... one of the mechanisms of evolution ... the older an
anthropoid, the stupider ... senility and sterol poisoning ... the intestinal
flora of the carp ... the Fifth Earl had anticipated his own discovery ... no
sterol poisoning, no senility ... no death, perhaps, except through an accident
... but meanwhile the foetal anthropoid was able to come to maturity ... It was
the finest joke he had ever known.
Without
moving from where he was sitting, the Fifth Earl urinated on the floor. A shriller chattering arose from the
darkness. He turned in the direction
from which it came and bellowed the guttural distortions of almost forgotten
obscenities.
'No need
of any further experiment,' Dr Obispo was saying. 'We know it works. You can start taking the stuff at once. At once,' he repeated with sarcastic
emphasis.
Mr Stoyte
said nothing.
On the
other side of the bars, the Fifth Earl rose to his feet, scratched, scratched,
yawned, then turned and took a couple of steps towards the boundary that
separated the light from the darkness.
His housekeeper's chattering became more agitated and rapid. Affecting to pay no attention, the Earl
halted, smoothed the broad ribbon of his order with the palm of his hand, then
fingered the jewel at his neck, making as he did so a curious humming noise
that was like a simian memory of the serenade in Don Giovanni. The creature in the ulster whimpered
apprehensively, and her voice seemed to retreat further into the shadows. Suddenly, with a ferocious yell, the Fifth
Earl sprang forward, out of the narrow universe of lantern light into the
darkness beyond. There was a rush of
footsteps, a succession of yelps; then a scream and the sound of blows and more
screams; then no more screams, but only a stertorous growling in the dark and
little cries.
Mr Stoyte
broke the silence. 'How long do you
figure it would take before a person went like that?' he said in a slow, hesitating
voice. 'I mean, it wouldn't happen at
once ... there'd be a long time while a person ... well, you know; while he
wouldn't change any. And once you get
over the first shock - well, they look like they were having a pretty good
time. I mean in their own way, of
course. Don't you think so, Obispo?' he
insisted.
Dr Obispo
went on looking at him in silence; then threw back his head and started to
laugh again.
THE CENTRETRUTHS GENERAL eBOOK CATALOGUE